A Bill for an Act to encourage the use of clean energy, and for
other purposes
The Parliament of Australia enacts:
Part 1—Preliminary
1
Short title
This Act may be cited as the Clean
Energy Act 2011.
2
Commencement
(1) Each provision of this Act specified in
column 1 of the table commences, or is taken to have commenced, in accordance
with column 2 of the table. Any other statement in column 2 has effect
according to its terms.
|
Commencement
information
|
|
Column 1
|
Column 2
|
Column 3
|
|
Provision(s)
|
Commencement
|
Date/Details
|
|
1. Sections 1 and 2 and anything in this Act not
elsewhere covered by this table
|
The day this Act receives the Royal Assent.
|
|
|
2. Sections 3 to 303
|
A single day to be fixed by Proclamation.
A Proclamation must not specify a day that occurs before
the latest of:
(a) the day the Clean Energy Regulator Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(b) the day the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise) Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(c) the day the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs) Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(d) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Auctions)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(e) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Fixed
Charge) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(f) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall
Charge—General) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(g) the day the Clean Energy (International Unit Surrender
Charge) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(h) the day the Clean Energy (Consequential Amendments)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(i) the day the Clean Energy (Customs Tariff Amendment)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(j) the day the Clean Energy (Excise Tariff Legislation
Amendment) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(k) the day the Clean Energy (Fuel Tax Legislation
Amendment) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(l) the day the Clean Energy (Household Assistance
Amendments) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(m) the day the Clean Energy (Income Tax Rates Amendments)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(n) the day the Clean Energy (Tax Laws Amendments) Act
2011 receives the Royal Assent.
However, if the provision(s) do not commence within the
period of 6 months beginning on the latest of:
(o) the day this Act receives the Royal Assent; and
(p) the day the Clean Energy Regulator Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(q) the day the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise) Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(r) the day the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs) Act 2011
receives the Royal Assent; and
(s) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Auctions)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(t) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Fixed
Charge) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(u) the day the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall
Charge—General) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(v) the day the Clean Energy (International Unit Surrender
Charge) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(w) the day the Clean Energy (Consequential Amendments)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(x) the day the Clean Energy (Customs Tariff Amendment)
Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(y) the day the Clean Energy (Excise Tariff Legislation
Amendment) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(z) the day the Clean Energy (Fuel Tax Legislation
Amendment) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(za) the day the Clean Energy (Household Assistance
Amendments) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(zb) the day the Clean Energy (Income Tax Rates
Amendments) Act 2011 receives the Royal Assent; and
(zc) the day the Clean Energy (Tax Laws Amendments) Act
2011 receives the Royal Assent;
they commence on the day after the end of that period.
|
|
|
3. Sections 303A and 303B
|
The day after this Act receives the Royal Assent.
|
|
|
4. Sections 304 to 312
|
At the same time as the provision(s) covered by table item 2.
|
|
Note: This table
relates only to the provisions of this Act as originally enacted. It will not
be amended to deal with any later amendments of this Act.
(2) Any information in column 3 of the table
is not part of this Act. Information may be inserted in this column, or
information in it may be edited, in any published version of this Act.
3
Objects
The objects of this Act are as follows:
(a) to give effect to Australia’s obligations
under:
(i) the Climate Change
Convention; and
(ii) the Kyoto Protocol;
(b) to support the development of an
effective global response to climate change, consistent with Australia’s
national interest in ensuring that average global temperatures increase by not
more than 2 degrees Celsius above pre‑industrial levels;
(c) to:
(i) take action directed
towards meeting Australia’s long‑term target of reducing Australia’s net
greenhouse gas emissions to 80% below 2000 levels by 2050; and
(ii) take that action in a
flexible and cost‑effective way;
(d) to put a price on greenhouse gas
emissions in a way that:
(i) encourages investment
in clean energy; and
(ii) supports jobs and
competitiveness in the economy; and
(iii) supports Australia’s
economic growth while reducing pollution.
4
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Act:
• This Act sets up a mechanism
to deal with climate change by encouraging the use of clean energy.
• The mechanism begins on 1 July
2012, and operates on a financial year basis.
• The mechanism is
administered by the Clean Energy Regulator.
• If a person is responsible
for covered emissions of greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility, the
facility’s annual emissions are above a threshold, and the person does not
surrender one eligible emissions unit for each tonne of carbon dioxide
equivalence of the gas, the person is liable to pay unit shortfall charge.
• If a natural gas supplier supplies
natural gas, and does not surrender one eligible emissions unit for each tonne
of carbon dioxide equivalence of the potential greenhouse gas emissions
embodied in the natural gas, the supplier is liable to pay unit shortfall
charge.
• If a person opts in to the
mechanism, the person acquires, manufactures or imports taxable fuel in
specified circumstances, and does not surrender one eligible emissions unit for
each tonne of carbon dioxide equivalence of the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the fuel, the person is liable to pay unit shortfall charge.
• The financial years
beginning on 1 July 2012, 1 July 2013 and 1 July 2014 are fixed
charge years.
• Later financial years are flexible
charge years.
• In a fixed charge year, carbon
units will be issued under this Act for a fixed charge.
• In a flexible charge year, carbon
units will be issued under this Act as the result of an auction.
• However, in the flexible
charge years beginning on 1 July 2015, 1 July 2016 and 1 July
2017, some carbon units may be issued for a fixed charge (to act as a cap).
• Free carbon units will be
issued under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program (which deals with emissions‑intensive
trade‑exposed activities).
• Free carbon units will be
issued to coal‑fired electricity generators.
• A carbon pollution cap
limits the sum of:
(a) the total
number of auctioned carbon units; and
(b) the total
number of free carbon units issued in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program; and
(c) the total
number of free carbon units issued to coal‑fired electricity generators.
• If a carbon unit was not
issued for a fixed charge, the unit is transferable.
• The Climate Change
Authority will conduct periodic reviews of this Act.
Note: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
5
Definitions
In this Act:
ABN has the same meaning as in the A New
Tax System (Australian Business Number) Act 1999.
accept the quotation of an OTN has the
meaning given by section 59 or 60.
account number, in relation to a Registry
account, has the same meaning as in the Australian National Registry of
Emissions Units Act 2011.
acquire, in relation to a carbon unit,
includes acquire by way of the issue of the unit.
applicable identification procedure has the
meaning ascertained in accordance with the regulations.
appropriate energy market operator, in
relation to a generation complex, means:
(a) if Australian Energy Market
Operator Limited (ACN 072 010 327) performs the functions of the energy market
operator in the place where the generation complex is located—Australian Energy
Market Operator Limited; and
(b) if the Independent Market Operator
established under the Electricity Industry (Independent Market Operator)
Regulations 2004 of Western Australia performs the functions of the energy
market operator in the place where the generation complex is located—the
Independent Market Operator.
associated provisions means the following
provisions:
(a) the provisions of the regulations;
(b) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Excise) Act 2011;
(c) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Customs) Act 2011;
(d) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Auctions) Act 2011;
(e) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Fixed Charge) Act 2011;
(f) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General) Act 2011;
(g) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (International Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011;
(h) sections 15A, 15AA, 18A, 22A,
22AA, 22B, 22C, 22E and 22F of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting
Act 2007;
(i) the remaining provisions of the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007, in so far as those provisions
relate to:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the regulations; or
(iii) the provisions covered
by paragraph (h);
(j) sections 134.1, 134.2,
135.1, 135.2, 135.4, 136.1, 137.1 and 137.2 of the Criminal Code, in so
far as those sections relate to:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the regulations; or
(iii) the provisions of the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007 covered by paragraph (h) or (i).
Note: The provisions covered by paragraph (h)
commence on 1 July 2012.
auction, when used in relation to a carbon
unit:
(a) in the case of an auction under
section 111—means a process that involves inviting persons to indicate or declare
what they would be willing to pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit;
or
(b) in the case of an auction under
section 112—means a process that involves inviting persons to indicate or declare
what price they would be willing to pay for the acquisition of the unit.
Australia, when used in a geographical sense,
includes:
(a) in any case—the external Territories;
and
(b) for the purposes of Part 3
(liable entities) and Part 7 (Jobs and Competitiveness Program)—the
exclusive economic zone, the continental shelf and the Joint Petroleum
Development Area.
Australian carbon credit unit has the same
meaning as in the Carbon Credits (Carbon Farming Initiative) Act 2011.
benchmark average auction charge has the
meaning given by section 114.
biofuel has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
biogas has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
biomass has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
business day means a day that is not:
(a) a Saturday; or
(b) a Sunday; or
(c) a public holiday in the Australian
Capital Territory.
carbon budget means the total amount of net
Australian emissions of greenhouse gases during a specified period.
carbon dioxide equivalence:
(a) of an amount of greenhouse gas—has
the same meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007;
or
(b) of an amount of potential
greenhouse gas emissions embodied in an amount of natural gas—has the same
meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007; or
(c) of an amount of potential
greenhouse gas emissions embodied in an amount of taxable fuel of a kind
specified in the regulations—has the meaning given by the regulations.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
carbon pollution cap has the meaning given by
section 14, 17 or 18.
carbon pollution cap number has the meaning
given by section 14, 17 or 18.
carbon reduction has the same meaning as in
the Fuel Tax Act 2006.
carbon unit means a unit issued under section 94.
certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation
assistance means a certificate issued under section 165.
charge, in relation to the issue of a carbon
unit, means whichever of the following is applicable:
(a) charge payable under subsection 100(10);
(b) charge payable under subsection 111(3);
(c) charge imposed by whichever of the
following is applicable:
(i) Part 2 of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Excise) Act 2011;
(ii) Part 2 of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Customs) Act 2011;
(iii) the Clean Energy (Unit
Issue Charge—Auctions) Act 2011;
(iv) the Clean Energy
(Unit Issue Charge—Fixed Charge) Act 2011.
civil penalty order means an order under
subsection 252(1).
civil penalty provision means:
(a) a provision of this Act that is declared
by this Act to be a civil penalty provision; or
(b) a provision of a determination under
subsection 113(1) that is declared by the determination to be a civil penalty
provision.
Climate Change Convention means the United
Nations Framework Convention on Climate Change, done at New York on 9 May
1992, as amended and in force for Australia from time to time.
Note: The text of the Convention is set out in
Australian Treaty Series 1994 No. 2 ([1994] ATS 2). In 2011, the text of a
Convention in the Australian Treaty Series was accessible through the
Australian Treaties Library on the AustLII website (www.austlii.edu.au).
Commonwealth place has the same meaning as in
the Commonwealth Places (Application of Laws) Act 1970.
Commonwealth Registry account has the same
meaning as in the Australian National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011.
Commonwealth relinquished units account means
the Commonwealth Registry account designated as the Commonwealth relinquished
units account.
compressed natural gas has the same
meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
constitutional corporation means a
corporation to which paragraph 51(xx) of the Constitution applies.
controlling corporation has the same meaning
as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
corporate group transfer test has the meaning
given by section 80.
covered emission from the operation of a
facility has the meaning given by section 30.
dead organic matter does not include a fossil
fuel.
declared designated joint venture has the
meaning given by section 70.
decommissioned underground mine has
the same meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting
Regulations 2008.
designated, in relation to a Commonwealth
Registry account, has the same meaning as in the Australian National
Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011.
designated joint venture, in relation to a
facility, means:
(a) a joint venture that is a mandatory
designated joint venture for the purposes of the application of this Act to the
facility; or
(b) a joint venture that is a declared
designated joint venture for the purposes of the application of this Act to the
facility.
designated large landfill facility: a
landfill facility is a designated large landfill facility in
relation to an eligible financial year if the number of tonnes of the carbon
dioxide equivalence of the total amount of covered emissions and legacy
emissions from the operation of the landfill facility during the eligible
financial year is 25,000 or more. For this purpose, assume that the financial
year beginning on 1 July 2011 is an eligible financial year.
designated opt‑in person has the meaning
given by the Opt‑in Scheme.
director includes a constituent member of a
body corporate incorporated for a public purpose by a law of the Commonwealth,
a State or a Territory.
electronic communication means a
communication by means of guided and/or unguided electromagnetic energy.
electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator
has the meaning given by section 7.
eligible Australian carbon credit unit means:
(a) a Kyoto Australian carbon credit
unit (within the meaning of the Carbon Credits (Carbon Farming Initiative)
Act 2011); or
(b) a non‑Kyoto Australian carbon
credit unit (within the meaning of that Act) issued in relation to an eligible
offsets project (within the meaning of that Act) for a reporting period (within
the meaning of that Act), where:
(i) if it were assumed
that the reporting period had ended before the Kyoto abatement deadline (within
the meaning of that Act), a Kyoto Australian carbon credit unit would have been
issued in relation to the project for the reporting period instead of the non‑Kyoto
Australian carbon credit unit; and
(ii) the non‑Kyoto
Australian carbon credit unit is not of a kind specified in the regulations; or
(c) an Australian carbon credit unit
of a kind specified in the regulations.
Subparagraph (b)(ii) and paragraph (c) do not,
by implication, limit the application of subsection 13(3) of the Legislative
Instruments Act 2003 to other instruments under this Act.
eligible emissions unit means:
(a) a carbon unit; or
(b) an eligible international
emissions unit; or
(c) an eligible Australian carbon
credit unit.
eligible financial year means:
(a) the financial year beginning on 1 July
2012; or
(b) a later financial year.
eligible international emissions unit has the
same meaning as in the Australian National Registry of Emissions Units Act
2011.
emissions intensity, in relation to a
generation complex, has the meaning given by whichever of subsection 168(1) or
(2) is applicable.
emissions number has the meaning given by
section 118.
emissions number publication time of a person
for an eligible financial year, means the time when the person’s emissions
number for the eligible financial year is entered on the Information Database
in accordance with subsection 185(2).
engage in conduct means:
(a) do an act; or
(b) omit to perform an act.
evidential burden, in relation to a matter,
means the burden of adducing or pointing to evidence that suggests a reasonable
possibility that the matter exists or does not exist.
excise duty has the same meaning as in the Excise
Act 1901.
executive officer of a body corporate means:
(a) a director of the body corporate;
or
(b) the chief executive officer
(however described) of the body corporate; or
(c) the chief financial officer
(however described) of the body corporate; or
(d) the secretary of the body
corporate.
externally‑administered body corporate has
the same meaning as in the Corporations Act 2001.
facility has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
Federal Court means the Federal Court of
Australia.
feedstock means a substance that is converted
by a chemical process into another substance that is not a greenhouse gas.
financial control has the meaning given by
section 92.
financial control transfer test has the
meaning given by section 84.
fixed charge year means:
(a) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2012; or
(b) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2013; or
(c) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2014.
flexible charge year means:
(a) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2015; or
(b) a later eligible financial year.
foreign account, when used in relation to a
carbon unit, means an account kept within a foreign registry.
foreign country includes a region where:
(a) the region is a colony, territory
or protectorate of a foreign country; or
(b) the region is part of a foreign
country; or
(c) the region is under the protection
of a foreign country; or
(d) a foreign country exercises
jurisdiction or control over the region; or
(e) a foreign country is responsible
for the region’s international relations.
foreign person has the same meaning as in the
National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
foreign registry has the same meaning as in
the Australian National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011.
free carbon unit means a carbon unit issued
free of charge.
fuel tax credit has the same meaning as in
the Fuel Tax Act 2006.
fugitive emissions has the meaning given by
the regulations.
generation complex means:
(a) a generation unit; or
(b) a set of 2 or more generation
units at the same location.
generation unit means a generator of
electricity, and includes:
(a) the boiler (if any); and
(b) any other related equipment
essential to the generator’s functioning as a generator.
Greater Sunrise unit area has the same
meaning as in the Offshore Petroleum and Greenhouse Gas Storage Act 2006.
greenhouse gas has the same meaning as in the
National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
group has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
GST group has the same meaning as in the Fuel
Tax Act 2006.
GST joint venture has the same meaning as in
the Fuel Tax Act 2006.
hold an eligible emissions unit: a person holds
an eligible emissions unit if the person is the registered holder of the unit.
identification number, in relation to a
carbon unit, has the meaning given by section 95.
Information Database means the Liable
Entities Public Information Database kept under section 183.
inspector means a person appointed as an
inspector under section 230.
interim emissions number has the meaning
given by section 126.
international agreement means an agreement
whose parties are:
(a) Australia and a foreign country;
or
(b) Australia and 2 or more foreign
countries.
international climate change agreement means:
(a) the Climate Change Convention; or
(b) any other international agreement,
signed on behalf of Australia, that:
(i) relates to climate
change; and
(ii) imposes obligations on
Australia to take action to reduce greenhouse gas emissions; or
(c) an international agreement, signed
on behalf of Australia, that:
(i) relates to climate
change; and
(ii) is specified in a
legislative instrument made by the Minister for the purposes of this
definition.
issue, in relation to a carbon unit, means
issue under section 94.
Jobs and Competitiveness Program means the
program under subsection 145(1).
Joint Petroleum Development Area has the same
meaning as in the Petroleum (Timor Sea Treaty) Act 2003.
joint venture means an unincorporated
enterprise carried on by 2 or more persons in common otherwise than in
partnership.
Kyoto Protocol means the Kyoto Protocol to
the United Nations Framework Convention on Climate Change, done at Kyoto on 11 December
1997, as amended and in force for Australia from time to time.
Note: The text of the Kyoto Protocol is set out in
Australian Treaty Series 2008 No. 2 ([2008] ATS 2). In 2011, the text of
an international agreement in the Australian Treaty Series was accessible
through the Australian Treaties Library on the AustLII website (www.austlii.edu.au).
landfill facility means a facility for the
disposal of solid waste as landfill, and includes a facility that is closed for
the acceptance of waste.
large gas consuming facility has the meaning
given by section 55A.
legacy emissions, in relation to a landfill
facility, has the meaning given by section 32.
liability transfer certificate means a
certificate issued under section 83 or 87.
liable entity means:
(a) a person who, under a provision of
this Act, is a liable entity; or
(b) a person who, under the Opt‑in
Scheme, is a liable entity.
liquefied natural gas has the same meaning as
in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
liquid petroleum fuel has the same meaning as
in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
liquid petroleum gas has the same meaning as
in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
local governing body means a local governing
body established by or under a law of a State or Territory.
mandatory designated joint venture has the
meaning given by section 65.
member, in relation to a group, has the same
meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
monitoring powers has the meaning given by
section 233.
monitoring warrant means a warrant issued
under section 245.
nameplate rating of a generation complex
means:
(a) if the appropriate energy market
operator is Australian Energy Market Operator Limited (ACN 072 010 327)—the
maximum generation capacity in megawatts of the generation complex, most
recently published by Australian Energy Market Operator Limited; and
(b) if the appropriate energy market
operator is the Independent Market Operator established under the Electricity
Industry (Independent Market Operator) Regulations 2004 of Western
Australia—the maximum generation capacity in megawatts of the generation
complex specified in a written determination made by the Regulator for the
purposes of this paragraph.
In making a determination under paragraph (b), the
Regulator may have regard to any information provided to the Regulator by the
Independent Market Operator.
natural gas has the same meaning as in the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008.
natural gas supplier means a person who
supplies natural gas.
natural gas supply pipeline does not include
a pipeline of a kind specified in the regulations.
non‑group entity has the same meaning as in
the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
obligation transfer number or OTN
means an OTN issued under section 40 or 41.
official of the Regulator has the same
meaning as in the Clean Energy Regulator Act 2011.
open, in relation to a Registry account, has
the same meaning as in the Australian National Registry of Emissions Units
Act 2011.
operation, in relation to a facility, has the
same meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
operational control has the same meaning as
in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
Opt‑in Scheme means the scheme under
subsection 92A(1).
OTN: see obligation transfer number.
OTN Register means the register kept under
section 45.
participant, in relation to a joint venture,
means any of the persons who carry on the joint venture.
participating percentage has the meaning
given by section 76 or 77.
participating percentage determination means
a determination under section 76 or 77.
person means any of the following:
(a) an individual;
(b) a body corporate;
(c) a trust;
(d) a corporation sole;
(e) a body politic;
(f) a local governing body.
person assisting an inspector has the meaning
given by section 234.
potential greenhouse gas emissions has the
same meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
power system reliability test
has the meaning given by section 170.
premises includes the following:
(a) a structure, building, vehicle,
vessel or aircraft;
(b) a place (whether or not enclosed
or built on);
(c) a part of a thing referred to in paragraph (a)
or (b).
Productivity Minister means the Minister
administering the Productivity Commission Act 1998.
provisional emissions number:
(a) has the meaning given by Part 3
or the Opt‑in Scheme; and
(b) has a meaning affected by sections 11B
and 11C of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
quarter means a period of 3 months beginning
on 1 January, 1 April, 1 July or 1 October.
quote, in relation to an OTN, has the meaning
given by section 48.
registered holder, in relation to an eligible
emissions unit, means the person in whose Registry account there is an entry
for the unit.
Registry means the Australian National
Registry of Emissions Units continued in existence under the Australian National
Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011.
Registry account has the same meaning as in
the Australian National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011.
Regulator means the Clean Energy Regulator.
relevant operator, when used in Division 5
of Part 3, has the meaning given by section 67A.
relinquish, in relation to a carbon unit,
means relinquish under section 210.
Resources and Energy Minister means the
Minister administering the Energy Efficiency Opportunities Act 2006.
reviewable decision has the meaning given by
section 281.
scheme, when used in section 29 or Part 19,
means:
(a) any agreement, arrangement,
understanding, promise or undertaking, whether express or implied and whether
or not enforceable, or intended to be enforceable, by legal proceedings; or
(b) any scheme, plan, proposal,
action, course of action or course of conduct, whether there are 2 or more
parties or only one party involved.
scope 1 emission of greenhouse gas has the
meaning given by the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Note: See also section 311 (transitional).
Secretary means the Secretary of the
Department.
staff of the Regulator has the same meaning
as in the Clean Energy Regulator Act 2011.
supply means supply (including re‑supply) by
way of sale, exchange or gift.
Note: See also section 6 (timing of supply).
surrender, in relation to an eligible
emissions unit, means surrender under section 122.
taxable fuel has the same meaning as in the Fuel
Tax Act 2006.
transfer, in relation to a carbon unit, has
the meaning given by section 104.
trust means a person in the capacity of
trustee or, as the case requires, a trust estate.
trustee has the same meaning as in the Income
Tax Assessment Act 1997.
trust estate has the same meaning as in the Income
Tax Assessment Act 1997.
United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea
means the United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea, done at Montego Bay
on 10 December 1982.
Note: The text of the Convention is set out in
Australian Treaty Series 1994 No. 31 ([1994] ATS 31). In 2011, the text of
a Convention in the Australian Treaty Series was accessible through the
Australian Treaties Library on the AustLII website (www.austlii.edu.au).
unit shortfall has the meaning given by
section 125, 128, 129 or 133.
unit shortfall charge means charge imposed by
whichever of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy
(Charges—Excise) Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy
(Charges—Customs) Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit
Shortfall Charge—General) Act 2011.
vintage year, in relation to a carbon unit, means
the eligible financial year that, in accordance with section 96, is the
vintage year of the unit.
withdrawal, in relation to natural gas, has
the meaning given by the regulations.
6 When
supply of natural gas occurs
For the purposes of this Act, the supply
of natural gas occurs:
(a) if the regulations provide that
the supply occurs when the gas passes a point ascertained in accordance with
the regulations—when the gas passes that point; or
(b) if:
(i) paragraph (a)
does not apply; and
(ii) the supply involves
physical delivery;
when the gas is physically
delivered.
7
Electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator
(1) For the purposes of this Act, a notice is
an electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator
if, and only if:
(a) the notice is transmitted to the Regulator
by means of an electronic communication; and
(b) if the Regulator requires that the
notice be transmitted, in accordance with particular information technology
requirements, by means of a particular kind of electronic communication—the Regulator’s
requirement has been met; and
(c) the notice complies with
regulations made for the purposes of subsection (2).
(2) The regulations may make provision for or
in relation to the security and authenticity of notices transmitted to the Regulator
by means of an electronic communication.
(3) Regulations made for the purposes of subsection (2)
may deal with:
(a) encryption; and
(b) authentication of identity.
(4) Subsection (3) does not limit subsection (2).
(5) For the purposes of this Act, if a notice
is transmitted to the Regulator by means of an electronic communication, the
notice is taken to have been transmitted on the day on which the electronic
communication is dispatched.
(6) Subsection (5) of this section has
effect despite section 14A of the Electronic Transactions Act 1999.
(7) This section does not, by implication,
limit the regulations that may be made under the Electronic Transactions Act
1999.
8
Crown to be bound
(1) This Act binds the Crown in each of its
capacities.
(2) This Act does not make the Crown liable
to a pecuniary penalty or to be prosecuted for an offence.
(3) The protection in subsection (2)
does not apply to an authority of the Crown.
(4) The protection in subsection (2)
does not apply to a penalty under section 135, 212 or 213.
9
Extension to external Territories
This Act extends to every external
Territory.
10
Extension to exclusive economic zone and continental shelf
This Act extends to a matter relating to
the exercise of Australia’s sovereign rights in the exclusive economic zone or
the continental shelf.
11
Extension to Joint Petroleum Development Area
This Act extends to the Joint Petroleum
Development Area.
Note: See also sections 26 and 27 (adjustment
of provisional emissions number).
12
Application to foreign ships
This Act does not apply to the extent
that its application would be inconsistent with the exercise of rights of
foreign ships in:
(a) the territorial sea; or
(b) the exclusive economic zone; or
(c) waters of the continental shelf;
in accordance with the United Nations Convention on the
Law of the Sea.
Part 2—Carbon pollution cap
13
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The regulations may declare
that:
(a) a quantity
of greenhouse gas that has a carbon dioxide equivalence of a specified number
of tonnes is the carbon pollution cap for a flexible charge year;
and
(b) that number
is the carbon pollution cap number for that flexible charge year.
Note: The carbon pollution cap limits the sum of:
(a) the total number of auctioned carbon units; and
(b) the total number of free carbon units issued in
accordance with the Jobs and Competitiveness Program; and
(c) the total number of free carbon units issued in
accordance with Part 8 (coal‑fired electricity generation).
14
Carbon pollution cap
Carbon pollution cap
(1) The regulations may declare that:
(a) a quantity of greenhouse gas that
has a carbon dioxide equivalence of a specified number of tonnes is the carbon
pollution cap for a specified flexible charge year; and
(b) that number is the carbon
pollution cap number for that flexible charge year.
Regulations
(2) In making a recommendation to the
Governor‑General about regulations to be made for the purposes of this section,
the Minister:
(a) must have regard to Australia’s
international obligations under international climate change agreements; and
(b) must have regard to the most
recent report that:
(i) was given to the
Minister by the Climate Change Authority under section 292; and
(ii) dealt with carbon
pollution caps and carbon budgets; and
(c) may have regard to the following
matters:
(i) undertakings relating to the reduction of greenhouse gas
emissions that Australia has given under international climate change
agreements;
(ii) Australia’s medium‑term
and long‑term targets for reducing net greenhouse gas emissions;
(iii) progress towards
reduction of greenhouse gas emissions;
(iv) global action to reduce
greenhouse gas emissions;
(v) estimates of the global
greenhouse gas emissions budget;
(vi) the economic and social
implications associated with various levels of carbon pollution caps;
(vii) voluntary action to
reduce Australia’s greenhouse gas emissions;
(viii) estimates of greenhouse
gas emissions that are not covered by this Act;
(ix) estimates of the number
of Australian carbon credit units that are likely to be issued;
(x) the extent (if any) of
non‑compliance with this Act and the associated provisions;
(xi) the extent (if any) to
which liable entities have failed to surrender sufficient units to avoid
liability for unit shortfall charge;
(xii) any acquisitions, or
proposed acquisitions, by the Commonwealth of eligible international emissions
units;
(xiii) such other matters (if
any) as the Minister considers relevant.
15
Disallowance of regulations
Scope
(1) This section applies to regulations made
for the purposes of section 14.
Disallowance
(2) Either
House of the Parliament may, following a motion upon notice, pass a resolution
disallowing the regulations. For the resolution to be effective:
(a) the notice must be given in that
House within 15 sitting days of that House after the copy of the regulations
was tabled in the House under section 38 of the Legislative Instruments
Act 2003; and
(b) the resolution must be passed, in
pursuance of the motion, within 15 sitting days of that House after the giving
of that notice.
(3) If neither House passes such a
resolution, the regulations take effect on the day immediately after the last
day upon which such a resolution could have been passed if it were assumed that
notice of a motion to disallow the regulations was given in each House on the
last day of the 15 sitting day period of that House mentioned in paragraph (2)(a).
(4) Section 42 (disallowance) of the Legislative
Instruments Act 2003 does not apply to the regulations.
Note 1: The 15 sitting day notice period mentioned in paragraph (2)(a)
of this section is the same as the 15 sitting day notice period mentioned in
paragraph 42(1)(a) of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003.
Note 2: The 15 sitting day disallowance period
mentioned in paragraph (2)(b) of this section is the same as the 15
sitting day disallowance period mentioned in paragraph 42(1)(b) of the Legislative
Instruments Act 2003.
16
When regulations must be tabled
(1) The Minister must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a set of regulations that:
(a) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for the flexible charge year beginning on
1 July 2015; and
(b) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for each of the next 4 flexible charge
years;
is tabled in each House of the Parliament under section 38
of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003 not later than 31 May 2014.
(2) A set of regulations covered by subsection (1)
must not be made, or tabled in a House of the Parliament, after 31 May
2014.
(3) If, at the start of the month of May that
is 14 months before the start of a particular flexible charge year beginning on
or after 1 July 2016, no regulations made for the purposes of section 14
have previously taken effect, the Minister must take all reasonable steps to
ensure that a set of regulations that:
(a) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for the flexible charge year; and
(b) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for each of the next 4 flexible charge
years;
is tabled in each House of the Parliament under section 38
of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003 not later than the end of that
May.
(4) A set of regulations covered by subsection (3)
must not be made, or tabled in a House of the Parliament, after the end of the
May mentioned in that subsection.
(5) If a set of regulations that:
(a) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for a particular flexible charge year; and
(b) declares the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for each of the next 4 flexible charge
years;
has taken effect, the Minister must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that:
(c) regulations declaring the carbon
pollution cap, and the carbon pollution cap number, for the flexible charge
year (the relevant flexible charge year) next following the last
flexible charge year covered by paragraph (b) are tabled in each House of
the Parliament under section 38 of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003
at least 5 years before the end of the relevant flexible charge year; and
(d) regulations declaring the carbon
pollution cap, and the carbon pollution cap number, for a flexible charge year
that is later than the relevant flexible charge year are tabled in each House
of the Parliament under section 38 of the Legislative Instruments Act
2003 at least 5 years before the end of the later flexible charge year.
(6) Regulations covered by paragraph (5)(c)
must not be made, or tabled in a House of the Parliament, after the start of
the 5‑year period mentioned in that paragraph.
(7) Regulations covered by paragraph (5)(d)
must not be made, or tabled in a House of the Parliament, after the start of
the 5‑year period mentioned in that paragraph.
(8) If:
(a) either:
(i) a set of regulations
covered by subsection (1) or (3) is made; or
(ii) regulations covered by
paragraph (5)(c) or (d) are made; and
(b) on a particular day (the tabling
day), a copy of the regulations is tabled in a House of the Parliament
under section 38 of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003;
then, on or as soon as practicable after the tabling day,
the Minister must cause to be tabled in that House a written statement setting
out the Minister’s reasons for making the recommendation to the Governor‑General
about those regulations.
17
Default carbon pollution cap for 2015‑16
Scope
(1) This section applies if there are no
regulations in effect that declare the carbon pollution cap, and the carbon
pollution cap number, for the flexible charge year beginning on 1 July 2015.
Carbon pollution cap
(2) The carbon pollution cap
for the flexible charge year is a quantity of greenhouse gas that has a carbon
dioxide equivalence of a number of tonnes equal to the number worked out using
the following formula:

where:
total emissions numbers for the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2012 means the estimate entered in the
Information Database under section 186 in relation to the eligible
financial year beginning on 1 July 2012.
Carbon pollution cap number
(3) The number worked out using that formula
is the carbon pollution cap number for the flexible charge year.
18
Default carbon pollution cap for a later flexible charge year
Scope
(1) This section applies if there are no
regulations in effect that declare the carbon pollution cap, and the carbon
pollution cap number, for a particular flexible charge year beginning on or
after 1 July 2016.
Carbon pollution cap
(2) The carbon pollution cap
for the flexible charge year is a quantity of greenhouse gas that has a carbon
dioxide equivalence of a number of tonnes equal to the number worked out using
the following formula:

Carbon pollution cap number
(3) The number worked out using that formula
is the carbon pollution cap number for the flexible charge year.
Part 3—Liable entities
Division 1—Introduction
19
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• This Part sets out rules
for:
(a) identifying
the persons who are liable entities for a financial year (liable entities are
liable to pay unit shortfall charge if they do not surrender sufficient
eligible emissions units); and
(b) the
provisional emissions numbers of those liable entities (provisional emissions
numbers are used to work out the number of eligible emissions units that must
be surrendered by a liable entity to avoid being liable to pay unit shortfall
charge).
• If a person is responsible
for covered emissions of greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility during
a financial year:
(a) the person
is a liable entity for the financial year; and
(b) the number of
tonnes of carbon dioxide equivalence of the gas is a provisional emissions
number of the person for the financial year.
• A person can be responsible
for covered emissions of greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility
because:
(a) the person
has operational control of the facility; or
(b) the person is
a participant in a designated joint venture that has the facility; or
(c) the person
is the holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to the facility.
• A covered emission of
greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility is a scope 1 emission (within
the meaning of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Regulations 2008),
but does not include:
(a) emissions
attributable to the combustion of certain fossil fuels; and
(b) emissions
attributable to the combustion of biomass, biofuel or biogas; and
(c) agricultural
emissions; and
(d) fugitive
emissions from decommissioned underground mines; and
(e) emissions
from legacy waste; and
(f) emissions
from closed landfill facilities; and
(g) emissions of
certain synthetic greenhouse gases.
• If a natural gas supplier
supplies natural gas during a financial year:
(a) the supplier
is a liable entity for the financial year; and
(b) the number of
tonnes of carbon dioxide equivalence of the potential greenhouse gas emissions
embodied in the natural gas is a provisional emissions number of the supplier
for the financial year.
• If a natural gas supplier
supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the recipient)
who quotes the recipient’s Obligation Transfer Number (OTN) in relation to the
supply, the supply will not count towards the supplier’s liability for the
financial year.
• If a person (the OTN
holder) quotes the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the supply of an
amount of natural gas, the OTN holder may be a liable entity.
• There is to be an Opt‑in
Scheme under which a designated opt‑in person will be a liable entity because
of the acquisition, manufacture or importation of taxable fuel.
Division 2—Direct emitters of greenhouse gases
Subdivision A—General rules
20
Liable entity—person who has operational control of a facility
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a facility (other than
a landfill facility) was under the operational control of a person throughout
an eligible financial year; or
(ii) a facility (other than
a landfill facility) was under the operational control of a person for a number
of, but not all, days in an eligible financial year (the control days);
and
(b) either:
(i) the facility passes
the threshold test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible
financial year; or
(ii) the facility is a
large gas consuming facility; and
(c) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the control days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that number
is a provisional emissions number of the person for the eligible
financial year.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the facility was under the
operational control of the person throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility
had a carbon dioxide equivalence of not less than 25,000 tonnes.
Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the facility was under the
operational control of the person for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, the total
amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility had a carbon
dioxide equivalence of not less than the amount worked out using the formula:

Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Exemption—designated joint venture
(6) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a designated
joint venture had the facility, then the facility is taken not to have been
under the operational control of the person during the whole or the part, as
the case may be, of the eligible financial year.
Exemption—liability transfer certificate
(7) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a liability
transfer certificate was in force in relation to the facility, then the
facility is taken not to have been under the operational control of the person
during the whole or the part, as the case may be, of the eligible financial
year.
OTNs—no double counting
(8) If:
(a) the facility was under the
operational control of the person throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the person
mentioned in paragraph (a)); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(9) If:
(a) the facility was under the
operational control of the person for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, an amount
of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was attributable to the
combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the person
mentioned in paragraph (a)); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
21
Liable entity—participant in designated joint venture
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a designated joint
venture had a facility (other than a landfill facility) throughout an eligible
financial year; or
(ii) a designated joint
venture had a facility (other than a landfill facility) for a number of, but
not all, days in an eligible financial year (the control days);
and
(b) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—a person was a participant in the joint venture throughout the eligible
financial year; and
(c) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—a person was a participant in the joint venture during the control
days; and
(d) either:
(i) the facility passes
the threshold test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible
financial year; or
(ii) the facility is a
large gas consuming facility; and
(e) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the control days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, the person’s
participating percentage of that number is a provisional emissions number
of the person for the eligible financial year.
Note: For participating percentage,
see section 76 or 77.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the designated joint venture had
the facility throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility
had a carbon dioxide equivalence of not less than 25,000 tonnes.
Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the designated joint venture had
the facility for a number of, but not all, days in the eligible financial year
(the control days); and
(b) during the control days, the total
amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility had a carbon
dioxide equivalence of not less than the amount worked out using the formula:

Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Exemption—liability transfer certificate
(6) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a liability
transfer certificate was in force in relation to the facility, then the
designated joint venture is taken not to have had the facility during the whole
or the part, as the case may be, of the eligible financial year.
OTNs—no double counting
(7) If:
(a) a designated joint venture had the
facility throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be a
participant in the designated joint venture); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(8) If:
(a) the designated joint venture had the
facility for a number of, but not all, days in the eligible financial year (the
control days); and
(b) during the control days, an amount
of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was attributable to the
combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be a
participant in the designated joint venture); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
Rounding
(9) If the provisional emissions number
worked out under subsection (2) is not a whole number, the provisional
emissions number is to be rounded to the nearest whole number (with a number
ending in .5 to be rounded up). For this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole
number.
22
Liable entity—holder of a liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a person was the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a facility (other
than a landfill facility) throughout an eligible financial year; or
(ii) a person was the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a facility (other
than a landfill facility) for a number of, but not all, days in an eligible
financial year (the certificate days); and
(b) either:
(i) the facility passes
the threshold test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible
financial year; or
(ii) the facility is a
large gas consuming facility; and
(c) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the certificate days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that number
is a provisional emissions number of the person for the eligible
financial year.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility
had a carbon dioxide equivalence of not less than 25,000 tonnes.
Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the certificate days); and
(b) during the certificate days, the
total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility had a
carbon dioxide equivalence of not less than the amount worked out using the
formula:

Note: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
OTNs—no double counting
(6) If:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the holder);
and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(7) If:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the certificate days); and
(b) during the certificate days, an
amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facility was attributable
to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the holder);
and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
Subdivision B—Landfill facilities
23
Liable entity for landfill emissions—person who has operational control of a
landfill facility
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a landfill facility
was under the operational control of a person throughout an eligible financial
year; or
(ii) a landfill facility
was under the operational control of a person for a number of, but not all,
days in an eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) the facility passes the threshold
test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible financial year; and
(c) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the landfill facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the control days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that number
is a provisional emissions number of the person for the eligible
financial year.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the landfill facility was under
the operational control of the person throughout the eligible financial year;
and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total
amount of covered emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the
landfill facility is not less than the landfill facility’s threshold number for
the eligible financial year.
Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (10).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the landfill facility was under
the operational control of the person for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, the
number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total amount of covered
emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the landfill facility is not
less than the number worked out using the formula:

Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (10).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Exemption—designated joint venture
(6) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a designated
joint venture had the landfill facility, then the landfill facility is taken
not to have been under the operational control of the person during the whole
or the part, as the case may be, of the eligible financial year.
Exemption—liability transfer certificate
(7) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a liability
transfer certificate was in force in relation to the landfill facility, then
the landfill facility is taken not to have been under the operational control
of the person during the whole or the part, as the case may be, of the eligible
financial year.
OTNs—no double counting
(8) If:
(a) the landfill facility was under
the operational control of the person throughout the eligible financial year;
and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill
facility was attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the person
mentioned in paragraph (a)); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(9) If:
(a) the landfill facility was under
the operational control of the person for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, an amount
of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the person
mentioned in paragraph (a)); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
Threshold number
(10) For the purposes of this section, the
landfill facility’s threshold number for the eligible financial
year is:
(a) in a case where:
(i) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is open for the acceptance of a
prescribed class of waste; and
(ii) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is within the prescribed
distance of another landfill facility that is open for the acceptance of the
same class of waste; and
(iii) the other landfill
facility is a designated large landfill facility in relation to the previous
eligible financial year; and
(iv) if a list has been
published by the Regulator during the eligible financial year under regulations
made for the purposes of section 206—the other landfill facility is
specified in the list;
10,000; or
(b) in any other case—25,000.
(11) For the purposes of subparagraph (10)(a)(ii),
distance is to be measured in accordance with the regulations.
(12) For the purposes of subparagraph (10)(a)(iii),
assume that the financial year beginning on 1 July 2011 is an eligible
financial year.
24
Liable entity for landfill emissions—participant in designated joint venture
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a designated joint
venture had a landfill facility throughout an eligible financial year; or
(ii) a designated joint
venture had a landfill facility for a number of, but not all, days in an
eligible financial year (the control days); and
(b) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—a person was a participant in the joint venture throughout the eligible
financial year; and
(c) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—a person was a participant in the joint venture during the control
days; and
(d) the facility passes the threshold
test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible financial year; and
(e) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the landfill facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the control days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, the person’s
participating percentage of that number is a provisional emissions number
of the person for the eligible financial year.
Note: For participating percentage,
see section 76 or 77.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the designated joint venture had
the landfill facility throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total
amount of covered emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the
landfill facility is not less than the landfill facility’s threshold number for
the eligible financial year.
Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (9).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the designated joint venture had the
landfill facility for a number of, but not all, days in the eligible financial
year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, the
number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total amount of covered
emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the landfill facility is not
less than the number worked out using the formula:

Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (9).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Exemption—liability transfer certificate
(6) For the purposes of this section, if,
throughout the whole or a part of the eligible financial year, a liability
transfer certificate was in force in relation to the facility, then the
designated joint venture is taken not to have had the facility during the whole
or the part, as the case may be, of the eligible financial year.
OTNs—no double counting
(7) If:
(a) the designated joint venture had the
landfill facility throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill
facility was attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be a
participant in the designated joint venture); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(8) If:
(a) the designated joint venture had the
landfill facility for a number of, but not all, days in the eligible financial
year (the control days); and
(b) during the control days, an amount
of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be a
participant in the designated joint venture); and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
Threshold number
(9) For the purposes of this section, the
landfill facility’s threshold number for the eligible financial
year is:
(a) in a case where:
(i) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is open for the acceptance of a
prescribed class of waste; and
(ii) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is within the prescribed
distance of another landfill facility that is open for the acceptance of the
same class of waste; and
(iii) the other landfill
facility is a designated large landfill facility in relation to the previous
eligible financial year; and
(iv) if a list has been
published by the Regulator during the eligible financial year under regulations
made for the purposes of section 206—the other landfill facility is
specified in the list;
10,000; or
(b) in any other case—25,000.
(10) For the purposes of subparagraph (9)(a)(ii),
distance is to be measured in accordance with the regulations.
(11) For the purposes of subparagraph (9)(a)(iii),
assume that the financial year beginning on 1 July 2011 is an eligible
financial year.
Rounding
(12) If the provisional emissions number worked
out under subsection (2) is not a whole number, the provisional emissions
number is to be rounded to the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5
to be rounded up). For this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
25
Liable entity for landfill emissions—holder of a liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) a person was the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a landfill facility
throughout an eligible financial year; or
(ii) a person was the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a landfill facility
for a number of, but not all, days in an eligible financial year (the certificate
days); and
(b) the facility passes the threshold
test set out in subsection (4) or (5) for the eligible financial year; and
(c) the total amount of covered
emissions from the operation of the landfill facility:
(i) if subparagraph (a)(i)
applies—during the eligible financial year; or
(ii) if subparagraph (a)(ii)
applies—during the certificate days;
has a carbon dioxide equivalence
of a particular number of tonnes.
Provisional emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that number
is a provisional emissions number of the person for the eligible
financial year.
Liable entity
(3) For the purposes of this Act, the person
is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
Threshold test—whole year
(4) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, the number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total
amount of covered emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the
landfill facility is not less than the landfill facility’s threshold number for
the eligible financial year.
Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (8).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
Threshold test—control days
(5) The facility passes the threshold
test for the eligible financial year if:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the certificate days); and
(b) during the control days, the
number of tonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the total amount of covered
emissions and legacy emissions from the operation of the landfill facility is not
less than the number worked out using the formula:

Note 1: For the landfill facility’s threshold
number, see subsection (8).
Note 2: See also section 29 (anti‑avoidance).
OTNs—no double counting
(6) If:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate throughout the eligible financial year; and
(b) during the eligible financial
year, an amount of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill
facility was attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the holder);
and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b).
(7) If:
(a) the person was the holder of the
liability transfer certificate for a number of, but not all, days in the
eligible financial year (the certificate days); and
(b) during the certificate days, an
amount of covered emissions from the operation of the landfill facility was
attributable to the combustion of natural gas that was:
(i) supplied by a natural
gas supplier to a person (the recipient) (who may be the holder);
and
(ii) withdrawn from a gas
supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the recipient did not quote the
recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply of the natural gas;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b):
(d) does not count for the purposes of
subsection (1); and
(e) counts for the purposes of paragraph (5)(b).
Threshold number
(8) For the purposes of this section, the
landfill facility’s threshold number for the eligible financial
year is:
(a) in a case where:
(i) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is open for the acceptance of a
prescribed class of waste; and
(ii) at any time during the
eligible financial year, the landfill facility is within the prescribed
distance of another landfill facility that is open for the acceptance of the
same class of waste; and
(iii) the other landfill
facility is a designated large landfill facility in relation to the previous
eligible financial year; and
(iv) if a list has been
published by the Regulator during the eligible financial year under regulations
made for the purposes of section 206—the other landfill facility is
specified in the list;
10,000; or
(b) in any other case—25,000.
(9) For the purposes of subparagraph (8)(a)(ii),
distance is to be measured in accordance with the regulations.
(10) For the purposes of subparagraph (8)(a)(iii),
assume that the financial year beginning on 1 July 2011 is an eligible
financial year.
Subdivision C—Adjustment of provisional emissions number in relation to a
facility in the Joint Petroleum Development Area or the Greater Sunrise unit
area
26
Joint Petroleum Development Area—adjustment of provisional emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is a
provisional emissions number of a person for an eligible financial year in
relation to covered emissions from the operation of a facility that is:
(a) located in the Joint Petroleum
Development Area; and
(b) not located in the Greater Sunrise
unit area;
during a period that is included in, or consists of, the
eligible financial year.
Adjustment
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that
provisional emissions number is taken to be the number worked out using the
formula:

where:
prescribed percentage means the percentage
(not exceeding 100%) specified in the regulations in relation to the facility
for the eligible financial year.
unadjusted provisional emissions number means
the number that, apart from this subsection, would be the provisional emissions
number of the person for the eligible financial year in relation to covered
emissions from the operation of the facility during the period.
27
Joint Petroleum Development Area/Greater Sunrise unit area—adjustment of
provisional emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is a
provisional emissions number of a person for an eligible financial year in
relation to covered emissions from the operation of a facility that is located
in both of the following areas:
(a) the Joint Petroleum Development
Area;
(b) the Greater Sunrise unit area;
during a period that is included in, or consists of, the
eligible financial year.
Adjustment
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that
provisional emissions number is taken to be the number worked out using the
formula:

where:
prescribed percentage means the percentage
(not exceeding 100%) specified in the regulations in relation to the facility
for the eligible financial year.
unadjusted provisional emissions number means
the number that, apart from this subsection, would be the provisional emissions
number of the person for the eligible financial year in relation to covered
emissions from the operation of the facility during the period.
28
Greater Sunrise unit area—adjustment of provisional emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is a
provisional emissions number of a person for an eligible financial year in
relation to covered emissions from the operation of a facility that is:
(a) located in the Greater Sunrise
unit area; and
(b) not located in the Joint Petroleum
Development Area;
during a period that is included in, or consists of, the
eligible financial year.
Adjustment
(2) For the purposes of this Act, that
provisional emissions number is taken to be the number worked out using the
formula:

where:
prescribed percentage means the percentage
(not exceeding 100%) specified in the regulations in relation to the facility
for the eligible financial year.
unadjusted provisional emissions number means
the number that, apart from this subsection, would be the provisional emissions
number of the person for the eligible financial year in relation to covered
emissions from the operation of the facility during the period.
Subdivision D—Anti‑avoidance
29
Anti‑avoidance
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) at any time after 15 December
2008, one or more persons entered into, commenced to carry out, or carried out,
a scheme; and
(b) having regard to the following:
(i) the manner in which
the scheme was entered into or carried out;
(ii) the form and substance
of the scheme;
(iii) the time when the
scheme was entered into and the length of the period during which the scheme
was carried out;
(iv) the result in relation
to the operation of this Act that, but for this section, would be achieved by
the scheme;
(iv) whether the scheme
involves increasing the number of facilities without achieving any significant
reductions in the total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the
facilities;
(v) whether the scheme
involves establishing a particular number of facilities (instead of a lesser
number of facilities) without achieving any significant reductions in the total
amount of covered emissions from the operation of the facilities;
it would be concluded that the
person, or any of the persons, who entered into, commenced to carry out, or
carried out, the scheme did so for the sole or dominant purpose of enabling a
person to obtain the benefit of one or more threshold provisions in relation to
a facility (the relevant facility) for an eligible financial
year.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
it is immaterial whether the person last mentioned in paragraph (1)(b) is
the person, or one of the persons, mentioned in paragraph (1)(a).
Cancellation of benefit of threshold provision
(3) The Regulator may, by writing, determine
that this Act has, and is taken always to have had, effect, as if the person
last mentioned in paragraph (1)(b) were not entitled to obtain the benefit
of the relevant threshold provision or provisions in relation to the relevant facility
for that eligible financial year.
(4) If the Regulator makes a determination
under subsection (3), the Regulator must publish a copy of the
determination on the Regulator’s website.
(5) A determination under subsection (3)
is not a legislative instrument.
Threshold provision
(6) For the purposes of this section, each of
the following is a threshold provision:
(a) subsection 20(4);
(b) subsection 20(5);
(c) subsection 21(4);
(d) subsection 21(5);
(e) subsection 22(4);
(f) subsection 22(5);
(g) subsection 23(4);
(h) subsection 23(5);
(i) subsection 24(4);
(j) subsection 24(5);
(k) subsection 25(4);
(l) subsection 25(5).
Subdivision E—Covered emissions from the operation of a facility
30 Covered
emissions from the operation of a facility
(1) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility is a scope 1 emission of
greenhouse gas, where:
(a) the greenhouse gas is released
into the atmosphere as a direct result of the operation of the facility; and
(b) the greenhouse gas is released in
Australia; and
(c) the Minister has, under subsection
10(3) of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007,
determined:
(i) methods by which the
amounts of the scope 1 emission are to be measured; or
(ii) criteria for methods
by which the amounts of the scope 1 emission are to be measured.
Exclusion of emissions from the combustion of certain
fuels
(2) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include emissions
attributable to the combustion of:
(a) liquid petroleum fuel; or
(b) liquid petroleum gas; or
(c) liquefied natural gas; or
(d) compressed natural gas;
that has been subject to:
(e) any duty under the Customs
Tariff Act 1995; or
(f) any duty under the Excise
Tariff Act 1921.
(3) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include emissions
attributable to the combustion of:
(a) biomass; or
(b) biofuel; or
(c) biogas.
Exclusion of agricultural emissions
(4) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include any of the
following emissions:
(a) an emission of methane from the
digestive tract of livestock;
(b) an emission of:
(i) methane; or
(ii) nitrous oxide;
from the decomposition of:
(iii) livestock urine; or
(iv) livestock dung;
(c) an emission of methane from:
(i) rice fields; or
(ii) rice plants;
(d) an emission of:
(i) methane; or
(ii) nitrous oxide;
from the burning of:
(iii) savannas; or
(iv) grasslands;
(e) an emission of:
(i) methane; or
(ii) nitrous oxide;
from the burning of:
(iii) crop stubble in
fields; or
(iv) crop residues in
fields; or
(v) sugar cane before
harvest;
(f) an emission of:
(i) carbon dioxide; or
(ii) methane; or
(iii) nitrous oxide;
from soil.
(5) Paragraph (4)(f) does not apply to
an emission that is attributable to the operation of a landfill facility.
Exclusion of other emissions from land
(6) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include emissions:
(a) that are attributable to changes
in the levels of carbon sequestered in:
(i) living biomass; or
(ii) dead organic matter;
or
(iii) soil; and
(b) that are also attributable to:
(i) land use; or
(ii) changes in land use
(including land clearing); or
(iii) forestry activities;
and
(c) that are not emissions to which subsection (4)
applies.
(7) Subsection (6) does not apply to an
emission that is attributable to the operation of a landfill facility.
Exclusion of fugitive emissions from decommissioned
underground mines
(8) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include fugitive
emissions from a decommissioned underground mine.
Exclusion of legacy emissions from landfill facilities
(9) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a landfill facility does not include
legacy emissions from the operation of the facility.
Exclusion of emissions from closed landfill facilities
(10) If:
(a) a landfill facility has not
accepted any waste since the start of 1 July 2012; and
(b) an amount of greenhouse gas is
emitted from the operation of the facility;
the amount mentioned in paragraph (b), to the extent
to which it is attributable to solid waste, is not a covered emission
from the operation of the landfill facility.
Exclusion of emissions of certain synthetic greenhouse
gases
(11) For the purposes of this Act, a covered
emission from the operation of a facility does not include any of the
following emissions:
(a) an emission of a
hydrofluorocarbon;
(b) an emission of sulfur
hexafluoride;
(c) an emission of a perfluorocarbon.
(12) Paragraph (11)(c) does not apply to
an emission that is attributable to aluminium production.
31
Measurement of covered emissions from the operation of a facility
For the purposes of this Act, covered
emissions from the operation of a facility are to be measured using:
(a) methods determined under
subsection 10(3) of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007;
or
(b) methods which meet criteria
determined under that subsection;
where the use of those methods satisfies any conditions
specified in the determination under that subsection.
Subdivision F—Legacy emissions from the operation of a landfill facility
32
Legacy emissions from the operation of a landfill facility
For the purposes of this Act, if:
(a) an amount of greenhouse gas was
emitted from the operation of a landfill facility; and
(b) waste was accepted by the landfill
facility before 1 July 2012;
so much of the amount mentioned in paragraph (a) as
is, under the regulations, taken to be attributable to waste accepted by the
facility before 1 July 2012 is a legacy emission from the
operation of the landfill facility.
Division 3—Natural gas
33
Liable entity—supply of natural gas
Preliminary emissions number
(1) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person; and
(b) it may reasonably be expected that
the natural gas is wholly or partly for use by the other person; and
(c) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(d) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(e) the other person did not quote the
other person’s OTN in relation to the supply mentioned in paragraph (a);
and
(f) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the amount mentioned in paragraph (a) have a carbon
dioxide equivalence of a particular number of tonnes;
that number is a preliminary emissions number
of the natural gas supplier for the eligible financial year.
Provisional emissions number and liable entity
(2) If the natural gas supplier has, under subsection (1),
one or more preliminary emissions numbers for the eligible financial year,
then, for the purposes of this Act:
(a) the sum of the preliminary
emissions numbers is a provisional emissions number of the
natural gas supplier for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the natural gas supplier is a liable
entity for the eligible financial year.
Reduction of provisional emissions number
(3) If:
(a) the natural gas supplier has,
under subsection (2), a provisional emissions number for an eligible
financial year; and
(b) the natural gas supplier has one
or more netted‑out numbers for the eligible financial year (see subsection (4));
the provisional emissions number is to be reduced (but not
below zero) by the total of those netted‑out numbers.
Netted‑out numbers
(4) The regulations may provide that, for the
purposes of this section, a number ascertained in accordance with the
regulations is a netted‑out number of a natural gas supplier for
an eligible financial year ascertained in accordance with the regulations.
35
Liable entity—supply of natural gas to a person who quotes the person’s OTN
Preliminary emissions number
(1) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
OTN holder) who quotes the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the
supply; and
(b) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(d) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the amount mentioned in paragraph (a) have a carbon
dioxide equivalence of a particular number of tonnes;
that number is a preliminary emissions number
of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
(2) If:
(a) the OTN holder’s OTN was quoted in
relation to the supply of an amount of natural gas to the OTN holder in
compliance with section 55B, so far as that section relates to a
particular large gas consuming facility; and
(b) the whole or a part (which whole
or part is in this subsection called the relevant portion) of the
amount of natural gas is, or is to be, combusted in the operation of the
facility; and
(c) an amount of covered emissions
from the operation of the facility is, or will be, attributable to the
combustion of the relevant portion;
paragraph (1)(d) has effect as if the amount
mentioned in that paragraph did not consist of or include the relevant portion.
Provisional emissions number and liable entity
(3) If the OTN holder has, under subsection (1),
one or more preliminary emissions numbers for the eligible financial year,
then, for the purposes of this Act:
(a) the sum of the preliminary
emissions numbers is a provisional emissions number of the OTN
holder for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the OTN holder is a liable
entity for the eligible financial year.
Reduction of provisional emissions number
(4) If:
(a) the OTN holder has, under subsection (3),
a provisional emissions number for an eligible financial year; and
(b) the OTN holder has one or more
netted‑out numbers for the eligible financial year (see subsections (5) to
(9));
the provisional emissions number is to be reduced (but not
below zero) by the total of those netted‑out numbers.
Netted‑out numbers
(5) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the OTN holder quotes the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to a supply to the OTN holder of an amount of natural
gas; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
the OTN holder uses the whole or a part (which whole or part is in this
subsection called the relevant portion) of the amount mentioned
in paragraph (a):
(i) as feedstock; or
(ii) in such a way as to
not emit any greenhouse gases; and
(c) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the relevant portion have a carbon dioxide equivalence of
a particular number of tonnes;
the number mentioned in paragraph (c) is a netted‑out
number of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
(6) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the OTN holder quotes the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to a supply to the OTN holder of an amount of natural
gas; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
an amount of covered emissions from the operation of a facility (other than a
large gas consuming facility) was attributable to the combustion of the whole
or a part (which whole or part is in this subsection called the relevant
portion) of the amount mentioned in paragraph (a); and
(c) the covered emissions mentioned in
paragraph (b) count for the purposes of subsection 20(1), 21(1), 22(1),
23(1), 24(1) or 25(1); and
(d) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the relevant portion have a carbon dioxide equivalence of
a particular number of tonnes;
the number mentioned in paragraph (d) is a netted‑out
number of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
(7) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the OTN holder quotes the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to a supply to the OTN holder of an amount of natural
gas; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
the OTN holder uses the whole or a part (which whole or part is in this
subsection called the relevant portion) of the amount mentioned
in paragraph (a) to manufacture:
(i) compressed natural
gas; or
(ii) liquefied natural gas;
or
(iii) liquid petroleum gas;
and
(c) the OTN holder holds a licence
under the Excise Act 1901 to manufacture compressed natural gas,
liquefied natural gas or liquid petroleum gas, as the case may be; and
(d) the compressed natural gas,
liquefied natural gas or liquid petroleum gas, as the case may be, is entered
for home consumption; and
(e) excise duty is or was payable by
the OTN holder or another person on the compressed natural gas, liquefied
natural gas or liquid petroleum gas, as the case may be; and
(f) the potential greenhouse gas emissions
embodied in the relevant portion have a carbon dioxide equivalence of a
particular number of tonnes;
the number mentioned in paragraph (f) is a netted‑out
number of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
(8) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the OTN holder quotes the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to a supply to the OTN holder of an amount of natural
gas; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
the OTN holder supplies the whole or a part (which whole or part is in this
subsection called the relevant portion) of the amount mentioned
in paragraph (a) to another person; and
(c) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the relevant portion have a carbon dioxide equivalence of
a particular number of tonnes;
the number mentioned in paragraph (c) is a netted‑out
number of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
(9) The regulations may provide that, for the
purposes of this section, a number ascertained in accordance with the
regulations is a netted‑out number of an OTN holder for an
eligible financial year ascertained in accordance with the regulations.
36
Liable entity—supply of natural gas to a person who misuses the person’s OTN
Preliminary emissions number
(1) For the purposes of this Act, if:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
OTN holder) who quotes the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the
supply; and
(b) the OTN holder was not permitted
or required by this Act to quote the OTN holder’s OTN; and
(c) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(d) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(e) the potential greenhouse gas
emissions embodied in the amount mentioned in paragraph (a) have a carbon
dioxide equivalence of a particular number of tonnes;
that number is a preliminary emissions number
of the OTN holder for the eligible financial year.
Provisional emissions number and liable entity
(2) If the OTN holder has, under subsection (1),
one or more preliminary emissions numbers for the eligible financial year,
then, for the purposes of this Act:
(a) the sum of the preliminary
emissions numbers is a provisional emissions number of the OTN
holder for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the OTN holder is a liable
entity for the eligible financial year.
Division 4—Obligation transfer numbers
Subdivision A—Issue of obligation transfer numbers
37
Issue of OTN
An OTN may be issued in one of the
following ways:
(a) as the result of an application
(see section 40);
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative
(see section 41).
38
Application for OTN
(1) A person may apply to the Regulator for
the issue to the person of an OTN.
(2) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by:
(i) such information as is
specified in the regulations; and
(ii) such documents (if
any) as are specified in the regulations; and
(d) be accompanied by the fee (if any)
specified in the regulations.
(3) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
(4) A fee specified under paragraph (2)(d)
must not be such as to amount to taxation.
39
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to an applicant, require the applicant to give the Regulator, within the
period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicant breaches the requirement,
the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicant:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
40
Issue of OTN as the result of an application
Scope
(1) This section applies if an application
under section 38 has been made for an OTN.
Issue of OTN
(2) After considering the application, the
Regulator may issue an OTN to the applicant.
Criteria for issue of OTN
(3) The Regulator must not issue the OTN
unless:
(a) the Regulator is satisfied that
the applicant is, or is likely to be, permitted or required by this Act to
quote the person’s OTN in relation to the supply to the person of an amount of
natural gas; and
(b) the Regulator has carried out the
applicable identification procedure in respect of the applicant.
Timing
(4) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicant to give further information under subsection 39(1) in relation to the
application—within 90 days after the applicant gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within 90 days after the
application was made.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
issue the OTN, the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to the
applicant.
41
Issue of OTN on the Regulator’s own initiative
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) the Regulator is satisfied that a
person is, or is likely to be, permitted or required by this Act to quote the
person’s OTN in relation to the supply to the person of an amount of natural
gas; and
(b) the Regulator has carried out the
applicable identification procedure in respect of the person.
Issue of OTN
(2) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to the person, issue an OTN to the person.
42
Surrender of OTN
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person is the
holder of an OTN.
Surrender
(2) The person may, with the written consent
of the Regulator, surrender the OTN.
(3) The surrender takes effect when the
consent is given by the Regulator.
Refusal
(4) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
give consent to the surrender of the OTN by the person, the Regulator must give
written notice of the refusal to the person.
43
Cancellation of OTN
(1) If a person holds an OTN, the Regulator
may, by written notice given to the person, cancel the OTN.
(2) The Regulator must not cancel a person’s
OTN under subsection (1) unless the Regulator is satisfied that:
(a) the person is not permitted or
required, and is unlikely to be permitted or required, by this Act to quote the
OTN in relation to the supply to the person of an amount of natural gas; or
(b) the person has breached this Act
or an associated provision.
(3) If:
(a) a person has ceased to exist; and
(b) immediately before the person
ceased to exist, the person held an OTN;
the Regulator must cancel the OTN.
43A
Publication of list of OTNs that have been cancelled or surrendered
(1) The Regulator must publish on its website
a list of OTNs that have been cancelled or surrendered.
(2) If an OTN is on the list, the list must
set out the time when the cancellation or surrender of the OTN takes effect.
44 OTN
is not transferable
An OTN is not transferable.
45 OTN
Register
(1) The Regulator must keep a register, to be
known as the OTN Register.
(2) The OTN Register is to be maintained by
electronic means.
(3) The OTN Register is to be made available
for inspection on the Regulator’s website.
Entry for an OTN
(4) If an OTN is issued to a person, the
Regulator must make an entry for the OTN in the OTN Register.
(5) An entry for a person’s OTN must set out:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) the person’s address last known to
the Regulator; and
(c) if the person has an ABN—the
person’s ABN.
(6) If:
(a) there is an entry for a person’s
OTN in the OTN Register; and
(b) the person changes the person’s
name or address;
the Regulator may make the appropriate alteration to the
entry.
(7) If an OTN is surrendered or cancelled,
the Regulator must remove the entry for the OTN from the OTN Register when the
surrender or cancellation takes effect.
Entry for a natural gas supplier
(8) The OTN Register is to include a list of
natural gas suppliers.
(9) The Regulator must, if requested to do so
by a natural gas supplier, make an entry for the natural gas supplier in the
list.
(10) An entry for a natural gas supplier in
the list must set out:
(a) the name of the natural gas
supplier; and
(b) the natural gas supplier’s address
last known to the Regulator; and
(c) the natural gas supplier’s
telephone number; and
(d) if the natural gas supplier has a
website—the URL of the website; and
(e) if the natural gas supplier has an
ABN—the ABN; and
(f) if the natural gas supplier’s
willingness to accept quotations of OTNs, in cases where the acceptance is not
mandatory, is subject to any conditions—those conditions.
(11) If:
(a) there is an entry for a natural
gas supplier on the list; and
(b) the natural gas supplier changes
the natural gas supplier’s name or address;
the Regulator may make the appropriate alteration to the
entry.
(12) If there is an entry for a natural gas
supplier on the list, the Regulator must, at the request of the natural gas
supplier, remove the entry from the list.
(13) If:
(a) the Regulator takes any of the
following actions:
(i) making an entry in the
OTN Register under subsection (4);
(ii) making an alteration
to an entry in the OTN Register under subsection (6);
(ii) removing an entry from
the OTN Register under subsection (7); and
(b) there is an entry for a natural
gas supplier in the list;
the Regulator must, as soon as practicable after taking
the action, notify the natural gas supplier, in writing, of:
(c) the taking of the action; and
(d) if the action consists of removing
an entry from the OTN register under subsection (7) because of the
cancellation or surrender of an OTN—the time when the cancellation or surrender
took effect.
46
Evidentiary provisions
(1) The Regulator may supply a copy of or
extract from the OTN Register certified by an official of the Regulator to be a
true copy or true extract, as the case may be.
Note: See also section 155 of the Evidence
Act 1995.
(2) The Regulator may charge a fee specified
in the regulations for supplying a copy or extract under subsection (1).
(3) A fee specified under subsection (2)
must not be such as to amount to taxation.
47
Notification of change of name or address of OTN holder or natural gas supplier
OTN holder
(1) If:
(a) there is an entry for a person’s OTN
in the OTN Register; and
(b) either:
(i) there is a change in
the name of the person; or
(ii) there is a change to
the person’s address as set out in the OTN Register;
the person must, within 28 days after the change, notify
the Regulator, in writing, of the change.
Natural gas supplier
(2) If:
(a) there is an entry for a natural
gas supplier in the OTN Register; and
(b) either:
(i) there is a change in
the name of the natural gas supplier; or
(ii) there is a change to
the natural gas supplier’s address as set out in the OTN Register;
the natural gas supplier must, within 28 days after the
change, notify the Regulator, in writing, of the change.
Civil penalty provision
(3) Subsections (1) and (2) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Subdivision B—Method of quotation of obligation transfer numbers
48
Quotation of OTN
(1) If a person (the OTN holder)
holds an OTN, the OTN holder makes a quotation of the OTN to a
natural gas supplier in relation to a supply of natural gas by the natural gas
supplier to the OTN holder if:
(a) the OTN holder makes a statement
to the natural gas supplier in connection with:
(i) the supply; or
(ii) a class of supplies
that includes the supply; and
(b) the statement is in writing; and
(c) the statement sets out:
(i) the words “quotation
of OTN” followed by the OTN; and
(ii) the name of the OTN
holder; and
(iii) if the OTN holder has
an ABN—the ABN; and
(iv) such other information
(if any) as is specified in the regulations.
Note: For example, if the OTN holder’s OTN is
123456, a statement could include the words “quotation of OTN 123456”.
(2) A statement under subsection (1) may
be included in a contract, order or similar document, whether or not in
electronic form.
(3) If the statement under subsection (1)
is made in connection with a class of supplies, the OTN holder is taken, for
the purposes of this Act, to have made a quotation of the OTN to
the natural gas supplier in relation to that class of supplies.
49
Effect of withdrawal of quotation of OTN
If:
(a) a person has made a quotation of
the person’s OTN to a natural gas supplier in relation to a supply of natural
gas by the natural gas supplier; and
(b) the quotation is withdrawn before
the supply occurred;
this Act has, and is taken always to have had, effect as
if the person had not quoted the OTN to the natural gas supplier in relation to
the supply.
50
Withdrawal of quotation of OTN if OTN is cancelled or surrendered
If:
(a) a person has made a quotation of
the person’s OTN to a natural gas supplier; and
(b) the OTN is cancelled or
surrendered;
the quotation is taken to have been withdrawn when the
cancellation or surrender takes effect.
51
Withdrawal of quotation of OTN by OTN holder
(1) If:
(a) a person (the OTN holder)
has made a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas supplier in
relation to a single supply; and
(b) the OTN holder ceases to be
permitted or required by this Act to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to
the supply;
the OTN holder may, by written notice given to the natural
gas supplier, withdraw the quotation of the OTN.
(2) If:
(a) a person (the OTN holder)
has made a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas supplier in
relation to a class of supplies; and
(b) the OTN holder ceases to be
permitted or required by this Act to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to
those supplies;
the OTN holder may, by written notice given to the natural
gas supplier, withdraw the quotation of the OTN.
52
Withdrawal of quotation of OTN by agreement
(1) If:
(a) a person (the OTN holder)
has made a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas supplier in
relation to a single supply; and
(b) the natural gas supplier was not
required by this Act to accept the quotation; and
(c) the natural gas supplier agrees to
the withdrawal of the quotation;
the OTN holder may, by written notice given to the natural
gas supplier, withdraw the quotation.
(2) If:
(a) a person (the OTN holder)
has made a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas supplier in
relation to a class of supplies; and
(b) the natural gas supplier was not
required by this Act to accept the quotation; and
(c) the natural gas supplier agrees to
the withdrawal of the quotation;
the OTN holder may, by written notice given to the natural
gas supplier, withdraw the quotation.
53
Validation of quotation of OTN
(1) If:
(a) a person (the OTN holder)
has purported to quote a number as the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas
supplier in relation to the supply of natural gas; and
(b) the purported quotation was due to
an honest mistake; and
(c) the Regulator is satisfied that it
would be reasonable to validate the quotation;
the Regulator may, by writing, determine that this Act
(other than this section) has, and is taken always to have had, effect as if
the OTN holder had quoted the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the supply.
(2) The Regulator must give a copy of
the determination to:
(a) the OTN holder; and
(b) the natural gas supplier.
(3) A determination made under subsection (1)
is not a legislative instrument.
54
Effect of surrender or cancellation of OTN—grace period for quotation in
relation to a single supply
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person’s OTN is surrendered or
cancelled; and
(b) immediately before the surrender
or cancellation took effect, a quotation of the person’s OTN was in effect in
relation to a single supply; and
(c) the quotation had been accepted by
the natural gas supplier to whom the quotation was made.
Grace period
(2) If the supply occurs during:
(a) the 28‑day period beginning when
the surrender or cancellation took effect; or
(b) if the person and the natural gas
supplier agree on a shorter period beginning when the surrender or cancellation
took effect—that shorter period;
this Act has effect, in relation to the supply, as if the
person had:
(c) held an OTN; and
(d) quoted the OTN in relation to the
supply.
55
Effect of surrender or cancellation of OTN—grace period for quotation in
relation to a class of supplies
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person’s OTN is surrendered or
cancelled; and
(b) immediately before the surrender
or cancellation took effect, a quotation of the person’s OTN was in effect in
relation to a class of supplies; and
(c) the quotation had been accepted by
the natural gas supplier to whom the quotation was made.
Grace period
(2) This Act has effect, in relation to a
supply that:
(a) is included in the class of
supplies; and
(b) occurs during:
(i) the 28‑day period
beginning when the surrender or cancellation took effect; or
(ii) if the person and the
natural gas supplier agree on a shorter period beginning when the surrender or
cancellation took effect—that shorter period;
as if the person had:
(c) held an OTN; and
(d) quoted the OTN in relation to the
supply.
Subdivision C—Quotation of obligation transfer numbers
55A
Large gas consuming facility
(1) For the purposes of this Act, if:
(a) a facility passes the threshold
test set out in subsection (3) for a financial year; and
(b) the financial year began on or
after 1 July 2010;
then, at all times after the start of the second 1 July
that occurs after the end of the financial year, the facility is a large
gas consuming facility.
(2) However, if the conditions specified in
the regulations are satisfied in relation to a large gas consuming facility,
the facility is taken to cease to be a large gas consuming facility at a time
ascertained in accordance with the regulations.
(3) For the purposes of subsection (1),
a facility passes the threshold test for a financial year if so
much of the total amount of covered emissions from the operation of the
facility during the financial year as is attributable to the combustion of
natural gas has a carbon dioxide equivalence of not less than:
(a) 25,000 tonnes; or
(b) if another number of tonnes is
specified in the regulations—the specified number of tonnes.
55B
Quotation of OTN—large gas consuming facility
(1) If:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
recipient); and
(b) it may reasonably be expected that
the natural gas is for use in the operation of a large gas consuming facility;
and
(c) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(d) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia;
the recipient must quote the recipient’s OTN in relation
to the supply.
(2) Before the first occasion on which the
recipient quotes the recipient’s OTN to the natural gas supplier under this
section, the recipient must:
(a) give the natural gas supplier
written notice of the recipient’s intention to quote the recipient’s OTN under
this section; and
(b) do so at least:
(i) 28 days; or
(ii) if the natural gas
supplier and the recipient agree on a lesser number of days—that lesser number
of days;
before that first occasion.
Civil penalty provisions
(3) Subsections (1) and (2) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
56
Quotation of OTN—large user of natural gas
(1) If:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
recipient); and
(b) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(d) at the time of the supply, a
facility is under the operational control of the recipient; and
(e) either:
(i) the recipient is an
approved person for the purposes of the application of this subsection to the
eligible financial year; or
(ii) the recipient is a
person to whom natural gas is supplied in the circumstances covered by section 55B;
the recipient may quote the recipient’s OTN in relation to
the supply mentioned in paragraph (a).
Note: For approved person, see subsection (5).
Approved person
(2) A person may apply to the Regulator to be
an approved person for the purposes of the application of subsection (1)
to a specified eligible financial year.
(3) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by such information
as is specified in the regulations; and
(d) be accompanied by such documents
(if any) as are specified in the regulations.
(4) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
(5) After considering an application under subsection (2),
the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicant, declare that the
applicant is an approved person for the purposes of the
application of subsection (1) to the eligible financial year specified in
the application.
(6) The Regulator must not declare that the
applicant is an approved person for the purposes of the application of subsection (1)
to an eligible financial year unless the Regulator is satisfied that it is
likely that so much of the total amount of covered emissions from the operation
of the facility during the eligible financial year as is attributable to the
combustion of natural gas will have a carbon dioxide equivalence of not less
than:
(a) 25,000 tonnes; or
(b) if another number of tonnes is
specified in the regulations—the specified number of tonnes.
(7) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
approve the applicant, the Regulator must give written notice of the decision
to the applicant.
57
Quotation of OTN—use of natural gas as a feedstock
(1) If:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
recipient); and
(b) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(d) the recipient intends to use the
whole or a part of that amount as a feedstock;
the recipient may quote the recipient’s OTN in relation to
the supply.
(2) Before the first occasion on which the
recipient quotes the recipient’s OTN to the natural gas supplier under this
section, the recipient must:
(a) give the natural gas supplier
written notice of the recipient’s intention to quote the recipient’s OTN under
this section; and
(b) do so at least:
(i) 28 days; or
(ii) if the natural gas
supplier and the recipient agree on a lesser number of days—that lesser number
of days;
before that first occasion.
Civil penalty provision
(3) Subsection (2) is a civil
penalty provision.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
58
Quotation of OTN—use of natural gas in manufacturing compressed natural gas,
liquefied natural gas or liquid petroleum gas
(1) If:
(a) during an eligible financial year,
a natural gas supplier supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the
recipient); and
(b) the natural gas is withdrawn from
a natural gas supply pipeline for the purposes of the supply; and
(c) the withdrawal takes place in
Australia; and
(d) the recipient carries on a
business that involves using the natural gas to manufacture compressed natural
gas, liquefied natural gas or liquid petroleum gas;
the recipient may quote the recipient’s OTN in relation to
the supply.
(2) Before the first occasion on which the
recipient quotes the recipient’s OTN to the natural gas supplier under this
section, the recipient must:
(a) give the natural gas supplier
written notice of the recipient’s intention to quote the recipient’s OTN under
this section; and
(b) do so at least:
(i) 28 days; or
(ii) if the natural gas
supplier and the recipient agree on a lesser number of days—that lesser number
of days;
before that first occasion.
Civil penalty provision
(3) Subsection (2) is a civil
penalty provision.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Subdivision D—General provisions
59
Acceptance of quotation of OTN in relation to a single supply
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person (the OTN
holder) makes a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas supplier
in relation to a single supply.
Acceptance of quotation of OTN
(2) If the OTN holder is permitted (but not
required) by this Act (other than section 57 or 58) to quote the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to the supply, the natural gas supplier may, by
written notice given to the OTN holder, accept the quotation.
(3) If:
(a) the OTN holder is permitted by
section 57 or 58 to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the supply;
and
(b) the OTN holder, by written notice
given to the natural gas supplier, declares that the quotation is a quotation
under section 57 or 58, as the case may be;
the natural gas supplier must, by written notice given to
the OTN holder, accept the quotation.
(4) If:
(a) the OTN holder is required by
section 55B to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the supply; and
(b) the OTN holder, by written notice
given to the natural gas supplier, declares that the quotation is a mandatory
quotation under section 55B;
the natural gas supplier must, by written notice given to
the OTN holder, accept the quotation.
(5) A notice given by the natural gas
supplier under subsection (2), (3) or (4) must set out:
(a) the words “acceptance of quotation
of OTN” followed by the OTN; and
(b) the name of the OTN holder; and
(c) if the OTN holder has an ABN—the
ABN; and
(d) a description of the supply; and
(e) the name of the natural gas
supplier; and
(f) if the natural gas supplier has
an ABN—the ABN; and
(g) such other information (if any) as
is specified in the regulations.
(6) A notice under subsection (2), (3)
or (4) may be included in a contract, order or similar document, whether or not
in electronic form.
(7) If the natural gas supplier does not
accept the quotation, this Act (other than this section) has effect as if the
OTN holder had not quoted the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to the supply.
Civil penalty provisions
(8) Subsections (3) and (4) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
60
Acceptance of quotation of OTN in relation to a class of supplies
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person (the OTN
holder) makes a quotation of the OTN holder’s OTN to a natural gas
supplier in relation to a particular class of supplies.
Acceptance of quotation of OTN
(2) If the OTN holder is permitted (but not
required) by this Act (other than section 57 or 58) to quote the OTN
holder’s OTN in relation to each supply included in the class of supplies, the
natural gas supplier may, by written notice given to the OTN holder, accept the
quotation.
(3) If:
(a) the OTN holder is permitted by
section 57 or 58 to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to a supply
included in the class of supplies; and
(b) the OTN holder, by written notice
given to the natural gas supplier, declares that the quotation is a quotation
under section 57 or 58, as the case may be;
the natural gas supplier must, by written notice given to
the OTN holder, accept the quotation.
(4) If:
(a) the OTN holder is required by
section 55B to quote the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to a supply included
in the class of supplies; and
(b) the OTN holder, by written notice
given to the natural gas supplier, declares that the quotation is a mandatory
quotation under section 55B;
the natural gas supplier must, by written notice given to
the OTN holder, accept the quotation.
(5) A notice given by the natural gas
supplier under subsection (2), (3) or (4) must set out:
(a) the words “acceptance of quotation
of OTN” followed by the OTN; and
(b) the name of the OTN holder; and
(c) if the OTN holder has an ABN—the
ABN; and
(d) a description of the class of
supplies; and
(e) the name of the natural gas
supplier; and
(f) if the natural gas supplier has
an ABN—the ABN; and
(g) such other information (if any) as
is specified in the regulations.
(6) A notice under subsection (2), (3)
or (4) may be included in a contract, order or similar document, whether or not
in electronic form.
(7) If the natural gas supplier does not
accept the quotation, this Act (other than this section) has effect as if the
OTN holder had not quoted the OTN holder’s OTN in relation to each supply
included in the class of supplies.
Civil penalty provisions
(8) Subsections (3) and (4) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
62
False or misleading declaration
A person commits an offence if:
(a) the person makes a declaration to
another person under paragraph 59(3)(b) or (4)(b) or 60(3)(b) or (4)(b); and
(b) the declaration is false or
misleading.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 12 months.
63
Misuse of OTN
(1) A person must not quote the person’s OTN
in relation to the supply of natural gas unless the person is permitted or
required to do so by this Act.
Ancillary contraventions
(2) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (1); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (1); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (1);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (1).
Civil penalty provisions
(3) Subsections (1) and (2) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Consequences of misuse of OTN
(4) If:
(a) a person quotes the person’s OTN
in relation to the supply of natural gas; and
(b) the quotation breaches subsection (1);
and
(c) the quotation was accepted by the
person who supplied the natural gas;
the following provisions have effect:
(d) the breach does not affect the
validity of any transaction;
(e) this Part (other than this section
and section 36) has effect as if the quotation had been authorised under
this Act.
Note: See also section 36.
64
Quotation of bogus OTN
Quotation of bogus OTN
(1) A person must not purport to quote a
number as the person’s OTN in relation to the supply of natural gas if the
number is not the person’s OTN.
(2) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (1); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (1); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (1);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (1).
Supply to a person who quotes a bogus OTN
(3) A person must not supply natural gas to
another person (the recipient) if:
(a) the recipient purports to quote a
number as the recipient’s OTN in relation to the supply; and
(b) the number is not shown in the OTN
Register as the recipient’s OTN.
(4) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (3); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (3); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (3);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (3).
Civil penalty provisions
(5) Subsections (1), (2), (3) and (4)
are civil penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Division 5—Designated joint ventures
Subdivision A—Mandatory designated joint venture
65 Mandatory
designated joint venture
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a joint venture has a facility;
and
(b) the participants in the joint
venture are parties to an agreement that deals with the facility; and
(c) 2 or more persons could satisfy
paragraph 11(1)(a) of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007
in relation to the facility; and
(d) no particular person has the
greatest authority to introduce and implement the policies mentioned in
subparagraphs 11(1)(a)(i) and (iii) of that Act in relation to the facility;
and
(e) no declaration under section 55
or 55A of that Act applies in relation to the facility.
Mandatory designated joint venture
(2) The joint venture is a mandatory
designated joint venture for the purposes of the application of this
Act to the facility.
66
Notification
Joint ventures in existence on 1 July 2012
(1) If:
(a) on 1 July 2012, a mandatory
designated joint venture is in existence; and
(b) it may reasonably be expected
that, if the joint venture had been constituted as a company instead of as a
joint venture, the company would be a liable entity under Division 2 for
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2012 as the result of the
emission of greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility of the joint
venture;
the participants in the joint venture must:
(c) jointly notify the Regulator, in
writing:
(i) that they are
participants in the joint venture; and
(ii) of the facility; and
(d) do so before the end of 31 July
2012.
Joint ventures that come into existence after 1 July
2012
(2) If:
(a) at a particular time after 1 July
2012, a mandatory designated joint venture comes into existence; and
(b) it is reasonable to expect that,
assuming that the joint venture had been constituted as a company instead of as
a joint venture, the company would be a liable entity under Division 2 for:
(i) the eligible financial
year in which that time occurred; or
(ii) the next eligible
financial year;
because of the emission of
greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility of the joint venture;
the participants in the joint venture must:
(c) jointly notify the Regulator, in
writing:
(i) that they are
participants in the joint venture; and
(ii) of the facility; and
(d) do so within 30 days after
becoming such a participant.
Facilities that become facilities of a mandatory
designated joint venture after 1 July 2012
(3) If:
(a) at a particular time on or after 1 July
2012, a facility becomes a facility of a mandatory designated joint venture;
and
(b) it is reasonable to expect that,
assuming that the joint venture had been constituted as a company instead of as
a joint venture, the company would be a liable entity under Division 2
for:
(i) the eligible financial
year in which that time occurred; or
(ii) the next eligible
financial year;
because of the emission of
greenhouse gas from the operation of the facility;
the participants in the joint venture must:
(c) jointly notify the Regulator, in
writing:
(i) that they are
participants in the joint venture; and
(ii) of the facility; and
(d) do so within 30 days after that
time.
Mandatory designated joint ventures that cease to exist
after 1 July 2012
(4) If:
(a) at a particular time after 1 July
2012, a joint venture ceases to be a mandatory designated joint venture; and
(b) it is reasonable to expect that,
assuming that the joint venture had been constituted as a company instead of as
a joint venture, the company would be a liable entity under Division 2 for
the eligible financial year in which that time occurred because of the emission
of greenhouse gas from the operation of a facility of the joint venture;
the participants in the joint venture must:
(c) jointly notify the Regulator, in
writing, of the cessation; and
(d) do so within 30 days after the
cessation.
Application for participating percentage determination
(5) A notification under subsection (1),
(2) or (3) in relation to a facility must be accompanied by an application
under section 74 for a participating percentage determination for the
joint venture in relation to the facility.
Civil penalty provisions
(6) Subsections (1), (2), (3) and (4) are
civil penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Subdivision B—Declared designated joint venture
67
Joint venture declaration test
A joint venture passes the joint
venture declaration test in relation to a facility if:
(a) the joint venture has the
facility; and
(b) the participants in the joint
venture are parties to an agreement that deals with the facility; and
(c) the facility is operated
exclusively for the joint venture by a person (who may be a participant in the
joint venture); and
(d) none of the participants in the
joint venture is an individual; and
(e) the joint venture is not a
mandatory designated joint venture.
67A
Relevant operator
For the purposes of this Division, if a
joint venture passes the joint venture declaration test in relation to a
facility at a particular time, a person who, at that time, operates the
facility exclusively for the joint venture is the relevant operator
of the facility at that time.
68
Application for declaration
Scope
(1) This section applies if a joint venture
passes the joint venture declaration test in relation to a facility.
Application
(2) The participants in the joint venture may
jointly apply to the Regulator for the declaration of the joint venture as a declared
designated joint venture in relation to the facility.
(3) The participants in the joint venture are
not entitled to make an application unless they have the written consent of the
relevant operator of the facility.
Form of application
(4) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by:
(i) the consent of the relevant
operator of the facility to the making of the application; and
(ii) such information as is
specified in the regulations; and
(iii) such documents (if
any) as are specified in the regulations.
(5) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
69
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to the applicants, require the applicants to give the Regulator, within
the period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicants breach the requirement,
the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicants:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
70
Making of declaration
Scope
(1) This section applies if an application
under section 68 has been made for declaration of a joint venture as a declared
designated joint venture in relation to a facility.
Making of declaration
(2) After considering the application, the
Regulator may, in writing, declare that the joint venture is a declared
designated joint venture for the purposes of the application of this
Act to the facility.
Criteria
(3) The Regulator must not make the
declaration unless the Regulator is satisfied that:
(a) the joint venture passes the joint
venture declaration test in relation to the facility; and
(b) the applicants have, and are
likely to continue to have:
(i) the capacity; and
(ii) the access to
information; and
(iii) the financial
resources;
necessary for them to comply
with obligations that will be imposed on them by this Act and the associated
provisions if the declaration is made; and
(c) if a participant in the joint
venture has previously been subject to obligations under this Act or the
associated provisions—the participant has a satisfactory record of compliance
with those obligations; and
(d) if the regulations specify one or
more other requirements—those requirements are met.
Timing
(4) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicants to give further information under subsection 69(1) in relation to
the application—within 90 days after the applicants gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within 90 days after the
application was made.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
make the declaration, the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the applicants.
71
Duration of declaration
(1) A declaration under section 70 comes
into force on the day specified in the declaration as the day on which the
declaration is to come into force (the start day).
(2) The start day may be earlier than the day
on which the declaration is made, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in the same
financial year as the day on which the declaration is made; and
(b) each of the following has consented
to the specification of the start day:
(i) the applicants;
(ii) the relevant operator
of the facility to which the declaration relates.
(3) The start day may be later than the day
on which the declaration is made, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in:
(i) the same financial
year as the day on which the declaration is made; or
(ii) the next financial
year; and
(b) each of the following has
consented to the specification of the start day:
(i) the applicants;
(ii) the relevant operator
of the facility to which the declaration relates.
(4) A declaration under section 70
remains in force indefinitely.
(5) Subsection (4) has effect subject to
this Division.
71A
Notification
(1) If:
(a) a declaration is in force under
section 70 in relation to a joint venture and a facility; and
(b) the joint venture ceases to pass
the joint venture declaration test in relation to the facility;
the participants in the joint venture must:
(c) jointly notify the Regulator, in
writing, of the cessation; and
(d) do so within 30 days after the
cessation.
Civil penalty provision
(2) Subsection (1) is a civil
penalty provision.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
72
Revocation of declaration
Scope
(1) This section applies if a declaration is
in force under section 70 in relation to a joint venture and a facility.
Revocation on request
(2) The Regulator must, by written notice
given to the participants in the joint venture, revoke the declaration if:
(a) the Regulator is requested to do
so by the participants in the joint venture; and
(b) the participants in the joint
venture have the written consent of the relevant operator of the facility to
the making of that request.
Revocation if joint venture declaration test not passed
(3) The Regulator must, by written notice
given to the participants in the joint venture, revoke the declaration if the
Regulator is satisfied that the joint venture does not pass the joint venture
declaration test in relation to the facility.
Revocation if unit shortfall charge not paid
(4) If an amount of unit shortfall charge
payable by a participant in the joint venture remains unpaid more than 3 months
after it became due for payment, the Regulator must, by written notice given to
the participants in the joint venture, inform the participants that unless that
amount is paid by the start of the next 1 July, the declaration will be
revoked.
(5) If:
(a) a notice is given to the
participants in the joint venture under subsection (4); and
(b) the amount referred to in the
notice remains unpaid as at the start of the 1 July referred to in the
notice;
the Regulator must, by written notice given to the
participants, revoke the declaration with effect from the start of that 1 July.
Subdivision C—Participating percentage determination
73
Provisional application for participating percentage determination
(1) An application under section 68 must
be accompanied by a provisional application for a participating percentage determination
for the relevant joint venture in relation to the facility concerned.
(2) If:
(a) a provisional application is made
for a participating percentage determination; and
(b) a declaration is made under
section 70 in relation to the joint venture;
the provisional application is to be treated as if it were
an application made under section 74 immediately after the section 70
declaration was made.
74
Application for participating percentage determination
Scope
(1) This section applies if a joint venture
is a designated joint venture in relation to a facility.
Application
(2) The participants in the joint venture may
jointly apply to the Regulator for the making of a participating percentage
determination for the joint venture in relation to the facility.
Form of application
(3) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by:
(i) such information as is
specified in the regulations; and
(ii) such documents (if
any) as are specified in the regulations.
(4) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
(5) An application may set out:
(a) a request that the Regulator make
a participating percentage determination in the terms set out in the
application; and
(b) the reasons for the request.
75
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to the applicants, require the applicants to give the Regulator, within
the period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicants breach the requirement,
the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicants:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
76
Participating percentage determination made in response to an application
Scope
(1) This section applies if an application
under section 74 has been made for a participating percentage
determination for a joint venture in relation to a facility.
Making of determination
(2) After considering the application, the
Regulator must make a determination that provides that, for each participant in
the joint venture, a percentage specified in, or ascertained in accordance with,
the determination is the participating percentage of that
participant in relation to the facility.
(3) Different percentages may be specified
in, or ascertained in accordance with, the determination for different
participants.
(4) The total of the percentages specified
in, or ascertained in accordance with, the determination must equal 100%.
Timing
(5) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicant to give further information under subsection 75(1) in relation to the
application—within 30 days after the applicant gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within 30 days after the
application was made.
77
Participating percentage determination made on the Regulator’s own initiative
Making of determination
(1) The Regulator may, on the Regulator’s own
initiative, make a determination that provides that, for each participant in a
specified designated joint venture, a percentage specified in, or ascertained
in accordance with, the determination is the participating percentage
of that participant in relation to the facility.
(2) Different percentages may be specified
in, or ascertained in accordance with, the determination for different
participants.
(3) The total of the percentages specified
in, or ascertained in accordance with, the determination must equal 100%.
Consultation
(4) Before making a determination under subsection (1),
the Regulator must:
(a) give each participant in the joint
venture a copy of a draft of the determination; and
(b) invite the participant to make a
written submission to the Regulator on the draft within the period specified in
the invitation; and
(c) have regard to any submission made
by the participant within the deadline.
(5) The period specified in the invitation
must not be shorter than 28 days.
78
Criteria for making participating percentage determination
Scope
(1) This section applies to the making of a
participating percentage determination for a joint venture in relation to a
facility.
Criteria—share of goods
(2) If the joint venture operates on the
basis that each participant has a share of the goods extracted, produced or
manufactured in connection with the operation of the facility, the Regulator
must ensure that the participating percentages of the participants in relation
to the facility represent each participant’s share in those goods.
(3) However, subsection (2) does not
apply if the Regulator is satisfied that another percentage would equally well,
or better, represent the way in which the economic benefits from the facility
are shared among the participants.
Criteria—share of access to services
(4) If:
(a) a joint venture is not operated on
the basis that each participant has a share of the goods extracted, produced or
manufactured in connection with the operation of the facility; and
(b) the joint venture is operated on
the basis that each participant has a share of access to services in connection
with the operation of the facility;
the Regulator must ensure that the participating
percentages represent each participant’s share of such access.
(5) However, subsection (4) does not
apply if the Regulator is satisfied that another percentage would equally well,
or better, represent the way in which the economic benefits from the facility
are shared among the participants.
Criteria—regulations
(6) If:
(a) a joint venture is not operated on
the basis that each participant has a share of the goods extracted, produced or
manufactured in connection with the operation of the facility; and
(b) the joint venture is not operated on
the basis that each participant has a share of access to services in connection
with the operation of the facility; and
(c) the regulations set out rules for
the purposes of this subsection;
the Regulator must comply with those rules.
(7) However, subsection (6) does not
apply if the Regulator is satisfied that another percentage would equally well,
or better, represent the way in which the economic benefits from the facility
are shared among the participants.
78A
Duration of determinations
(1) A participating percentage determination
comes into force on the day specified in the determination as the day on which
the determination is to come into force (the start day).
(2) If the participating percentage
determination is the first participating percentage determination for a joint
venture in relation to a facility, the start day must be the day on which the
declaration under section 70 in relation to the joint venture comes into force.
(3) If subsection (2) does not apply in
relation to the participating percentage determination, the start day may be
earlier than the day on which the determination is made, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in the same
financial year as the day on which the determination is made; and
(b) if the determination was made in
response to an application—each of the following has consented to the
specification of the start day:
(i) the applicants;
(ii) the relevant operator
of the facility to which the determination relates.
(4) If subsection (2) does not apply in
relation to the participating percentage determination, the start day may be
later than the day on which the determination is made, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in:
(i) the same financial
year as the day on which the determination is made; or
(ii) the next financial
year; and
(b) if the determination was made in
response to an application—each of the following has consented to the
specification of the start day:
(i) the applicants;
(ii) the relevant operator
of the facility to which the determination relates.
(5) A participating percentage determination remains
in force indefinitely.
(6) Subsection (5) has effect subject to
this Division.
79
Replacement determinations
(1) The variation of a participating
percentage determination is to be achieved by replacing the determination.
(2) If a participating percentage
determination is expressed to replace an existing participating percentage
determination, the existing participating percentage determination is taken to
have been revoked when the replacement determination comes into force.
Division 6—Liability transfer certificates
Subdivision A—Transfer of liability to another member of a corporate group
80
Corporate group transfer test
A company passes the corporate
group transfer test in relation to a facility if:
(a) the company is a member of a
controlling corporation’s group; and
(b) the company is registered as a
company under Part 2A.2 of the Corporations Act 2001; and
(c) the facility is under the
operational control of another member of the group.
81
Application for liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if a company passes
the corporate group transfer test in relation to a facility.
Application
(2) The company may apply to the Regulator
for the issue to the company of a liability transfer certificate in relation to
the facility.
(3) The company is not entitled to make an
application unless the company has the written consent of the member mentioned
in paragraph 80(c).
Form of application
(4) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by:
(i) a written statement by
the member mentioned in paragraph 80(c) declaring that the member is a member
of the controlling corporation’s group; and
(ii) a written statement by
the member mentioned in paragraph 80(c) declaring that the facility is under
the operational control of the member; and
(iii) the consent of the member
mentioned in paragraph 80(c) to the making of the application; and
(iv) such information as is
specified in the regulations; and
(v) such documents (if any)
as are specified in the regulations.
(5) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
82
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to an applicant, require the applicant to give the Regulator, within the
period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicant breaches the
requirement, the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicant:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
83
Issue of liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if an application
under section 81 has been made for a liability transfer certificate in
relation to a facility.
Issue of certificate
(2) After considering the application, the
Regulator may issue to the applicant a liability transfer certificate in
relation to the facility.
Criteria for issue of certificate
(3) The Regulator must not issue the
liability transfer certificate unless the Regulator is satisfied that:
(a) the applicant passes the corporate
group transfer test in relation to the facility; and
(b) the applicant has, and is likely
to continue to have:
(i) the capacity; and
(ii) the access to
information; and
(iii) the financial
resources;
necessary for it to comply with
obligations that will be imposed on the applicant by this Act and the
associated provisions if the certificate is issued; and
(c) if the regulations specify one or
more other requirements—those requirements are met.
Timing
(4) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicant to give further information under subsection 82(1) in relation to the
application—within 90 days after the applicant gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within 90 days after the
application was made.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
issue the liability transfer certificate, the Regulator must give written
notice of the decision to the applicant.
Subdivision B—Transfer of liability to a person who has financial control
of a facility
84
Financial control transfer test
A person (the first person)
passes the financial control transfer test in relation to a
facility if:
(a) the facility is under the
operational control of another person (the operator); and
(b) the first person has financial
control over the facility; and
(c) the first person is not an
individual; and
(d) the first person is not a foreign
person; and
(e) if the first person is a member of
a controlling corporation’s group—the operator is not a member of the group.
Note: For financial control, see
section 92.
85
Application for liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person passes
the financial control transfer test in relation to a facility.
Application
(2) The person may apply to the Regulator for
the issue to the person of a liability transfer certificate in relation to the
facility.
(3) The person is not entitled to make an application
unless the person has the written consent of:
(a) if the person who has operational
control over the facility:
(i) is a member of a
controlling corporation’s group; and
(ii) is not the controlling
corporation;
the controlling corporation; or
(b) otherwise—the person who has
operational control over the facility.
(4) If the person:
(a) is a member of a controlling
corporation’s group; and
(b) is not the controlling corporation
of the group;
the person is not entitled to make an application unless
the person has the written consent of the controlling corporation of the group.
Form of application
(5) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator; and
(c) be accompanied by:
(i) if paragraph (3)(a)
applies—the consent of the controlling corporation mentioned in paragraph (3)(a)
to the making of the application; and
(ii) if paragraph (3)(b)
applies—the consent of the person mentioned in paragraph (3)(b) to the
making of the application; and
(iii) if subsection (4)
applies—the consent of the controlling corporation mentioned in subsection (4)
to the making of the application; and
(iv) such information as is
specified in the regulations; and
(v) such documents (if any)
as are specified in the regulations.
(6) The approved form of application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
86
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to an applicant, require the applicant to give the Regulator, within the
period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicant breaches the
requirement, the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicant:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
87
Issue of liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if an application
under section 85 has been made for a liability transfer certificate in
relation to a facility.
Issue of certificate
(2) After considering the application, the
Regulator may issue to the applicant a liability transfer certificate in
relation to the facility.
Criteria for issue of certificate
(3) The Regulator must not issue the
liability transfer certificate unless the Regulator is satisfied that:
(a) the applicant passes the financial
control transfer test in relation to the facility; and
(b) the applicant has, and is likely
to continue to have:
(i) the capacity; and
(ii) the access to
information; and
(iii) the financial
resources;
necessary for it to comply with
obligations that will be imposed on the applicant by this Act and the
associated provisions if the certificate is issued; and
(c) if the regulations specify one or
more other requirements—those requirements are met.
Timing
(4) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicant to give further information under subsection 86(1) in relation to the
application—within 90 days after the applicant gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within 90 days after the
application was made.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
issue the liability transfer certificate, the Regulator must give written
notice of the decision to the applicant.
Subdivision C—Other provisions
88
Duration of liability transfer certificate
(1) A liability transfer certificate comes
into force on the day specified in the certificate as the day on which the
certificate is to come into force (the start day).
(2) The start day may be earlier than the day
on which the certificate is issued, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in the same
financial year as the day on which the certificate is issued; and
(b) each of the following has
consented to the specification of the start day:
(i) the applicant;
(ii) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 83, where a person consented under
subsection 81(3) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
person;
(iii) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a controlling corporation
consented under paragraph 85(3)(a) to the making of the application for the
certificate—the controlling corporation;
(iv) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a person consented under
paragraph 85(3)(b) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
person;
(v) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a controlling corporation consented
under subsection 85(4) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
controlling corporation.
(3) The start day may be later than the day
on which the certificate is issued, so long as:
(a) the start day occurs in:
(i) the same financial
year as the day on which the certificate is issued; or
(ii) the next financial
year; and
(b) each of the following has
consented to the specification of the start day:
(i) the applicant;
(ii) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 83, where a person consented under
subsection 81(3) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
person;
(iii) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a controlling corporation
consented under paragraph 85(3)(a) to the making of the application for the
certificate—the controlling corporation;
(iv) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a person consented under
paragraph 85(3)(b) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
person;
(v) in the case of a
certificate issued under section 87, where a controlling corporation
consented under subsection 85(4) to the making of the application for the
certificate—the controlling corporation.
(4) A liability transfer certificate issued remains
in force indefinitely.
(5) Subsection (4) has effect subject to
this Division.
89
Surrender of liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person is the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a facility.
Surrender
(2) The person may, with the written consent
of the Regulator, surrender the certificate.
(3) The surrender takes effect when the
consent is given by the Regulator.
Consent to surrender
(4) The Regulator must not consent to the
surrender of the certificate unless:
(a) in the case of a certificate
issued under section 83, where a person consented under subsection 81(3)
to the making of the application for the certificate—the person has agreed to
the surrender of the certificate; and
(b) in the case of a certificate
issued under section 87, where a controlling corporation consented under
paragraph 85(3)(a) to the making of the application for the certificate—the
controlling corporation has agreed to the surrender of the certificate; and
(c) in the case of a certificate
issued under section 87, where a person consented under paragraph 85(3)(b)
to the making of the application for the certificate—the person has agreed to
the surrender of the certificate; and
(d) either:
(i) the certificate has been
in force for at least 4 years; or
(ii) the certificate has
been in force for less than 4 years, but the Regulator is satisfied that there
are special circumstances that warrant the giving of consent to the surrender
of the certificate.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
give consent to the surrender of the certificate, the Regulator must give
written notice of the decision to the person.
90
Cancellation of liability transfer certificate
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person is the
holder of a liability transfer certificate in relation to a facility.
Cancellation
(2) The Regulator must, by written notice
given to the person, cancel the certificate if:
(a) in a case where the certificate
was issued under section 83 to a company that was a member of a
controlling corporation’s group—the Regulator is satisfied that:
(i) the company does not
pass the corporate group transfer test in relation to the facility; or
(ii) the company is not a
member of the controlling corporation’s group; or
(iii) a person who consented
under subsection 81(3) to the making of the application for the certificate is
not a member of the group; or
(iv) an amount of unit
shortfall charge payable by the company remains unpaid more than 30 days after
it became due for payment; or
(iv) the company has become
an externally‑administered body corporate; or
(v) if the regulations
specify one or more other grounds for cancellation—at least one of those
grounds is applicable to the company; or
(b) in a case where the certificate
was issued under section 87 to a person—the Regulator is satisfied that:
(i) the person does not
pass the financial control transfer test in relation to the facility concerned;
or
(ii) if a controlling
corporation of a group consented under subsection 85(4) to the making of the
application for the certificate—the person is not a member of the group; or
(iii) an amount of unit
shortfall charge payable by the person remains unpaid more than 30 days after
it became for payment; or
(iv) the person has become
an externally‑administered body corporate; or
(v) if the regulations
specify one or more other grounds for cancellation—at least one of those
grounds is applicable to the person.
(3) If the Regulator cancels the certificate,
the Regulator must give written notice of the cancellation to the person who
has operational control of the facility.
91
Liability transfer certificate is not transferable
A liability transfer certificate is not
transferable.
92
Financial control
(1) For the purposes of this Act, if a person
(the operator) has operational control over a facility, another
person (the second person) has financial control
over the facility if:
(a) under a contract between:
(i) the operator; and
(ii) the second person;
the operator operates the
facility on behalf of the second person; or
(b) under a contract between:
(i) the operator; and
(ii) the second person and
one or more other persons;
the operator operates the
facility on behalf of the second person and those other persons; or
(c) the second person is able to
control the trading or financial relationships of the operator in relation to
the facility; or
(d) the second person has the economic
benefits from the facility; or
(e) all of the following conditions
are satisfied:
(i) the second person is a
participant in a joint venture;
(ii) there is one other
participant in the joint venture;
(iii) the second person
shares the economic benefits from the facility with the other participant;
(iv) the second person’s
share equals or exceeds the share of the other participant; or
(f) all of the following conditions
are satisfied:
(i) the second person is a
participant in a joint venture;
(ii) there are 2 or more
other participants in the joint venture;
(iii) the second person
shares the economic benefits from the facility with the other participants;
(iv) no other participant
has a share that exceeds the share of the second person; or
(g) all of the following conditions
are satisfied:
(i) the second person is a
partner in a partnership;
(ii) there is one other
partner in the partnership;
(iii) the second person
shares the economic benefits from the facility with the other partner;
(iv) the second person’s
share equals or exceeds the share of the other partner; or
(h) all of the following conditions
are satisfied:
(i) the second person is a
partner in a partnership;
(ii) there are 2 or more
other partners in the partnership;
(iii) the second person
shares the economic benefits from the facility with the other partners;
(iv) no other partner has a
share that exceeds the share of the second person; or
(i) the second person is able to
direct or sell the output of the facility; or
(j) under the regulations, the second
person is taken to have financial control over the facility.
(2) In determining whether the second person
has that financial control, regard must be had to the economic and commercial
substance of the matters mentioned in subsection (1).
Division 7—Opt‑in Scheme
92A
Opt‑in Scheme
(1) The regulations may formulate a scheme
(to be known as the Opt‑in Scheme) that:
(a) provides that, if:
(i) during an eligible
financial year, a person acquires, manufactures or imports an amount of taxable
fuel of a kind specified in the scheme; and
(ii) an entity is entitled
to a fuel tax credit in respect of that acquisition, manufacture or import, as
the case may be; and
(iii) under the scheme, a
person is, as the result of an application made by the person, taken to be a designated
opt‑in person in respect of an amount of fuel (the opt‑in amount),
being some or all of the amount mentioned in subparagraph (i); and
(iv) the designated opt‑in
person passes the eligibility test set out in subsection (4) in respect of
that acquisition, manufacture or import, as the case may be; and
(v) the conditions (if any)
set out in the scheme are satisfied; and
(vi) the potential
greenhouse gas emissions embodied in the opt‑in amount have a carbon dioxide
equivalence of a particular number of tonnes;
then, for the purposes of the
scheme, that number is a preliminary emissions number of the
designated opt‑in person for the eligible financial year; and
(b) provides that if, under the
scheme, a designated opt‑in person has one or more preliminary emissions
numbers for an eligible financial year, then, for the purposes of this Act:
(i) the sum of those
preliminary emissions numbers is a provisional emissions number of
the designated opt‑in person for the eligible financial year; and
(ii) the designated opt‑in
person is a liable entity for the eligible financial year.
(2) It is immaterial whether the entity
mentioned in subparagraph (1)(a)(ii) is the person mentioned in subparagraph (1)(a)(i).
(3) It is immaterial whether the person
mentioned in subparagraph (1)(a)(iii) is:
(a) the person mentioned in subparagraph (1)(a)(i);
or
(b) the entity mentioned in subparagraph (1)(a)(ii).
(4) For the purposes of this section, a
designated opt‑in person passes the eligibility test in respect
of an acquisition, manufacture or import of taxable fuel if:
(a) in a case where the entity that
was entitled to a fuel tax credit in respect of that acquisition, manufacture
or import, as the case may be, consists of the members of a GST group mentioned
in the table in section 70‑5 of the Fuel Tax Act 2006—the
designated opt‑in person is a member of the group; or
(b) in a case where the entity that
was entitled to a fuel tax credit in respect of that acquisition, manufacture
or import, as the case may be, consists of the participants in a GST joint venture
mentioned in the table in section 70‑5 of the Fuel Tax Act 2006—the
designated opt‑in person is a participant in the GST joint venture; or
(c) in any other case—the designated
opt‑in person is the entity that was entitled to a fuel tax credit in respect
of that acquisition, manufacture or import, as the case may be.
(5) Regulations made for the purposes of subparagraph (1)(a)(iii)
may empower the Regulator to declare that a specified person is taken to be a
designated opt‑in person in respect of an amount of fuel.
(6) The Minister must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that regulations are made for the purposes of subsection (1)
before 15 December 2012.
(7) For the purposes of this section, eligible
financial year does not include a financial year that begins before 1 July
2013.
(8) For the purposes of this section, entity
has the same meaning as in the Fuel Tax Act 2006.
(9) For the purposes of this section, participant
has the same meaning as in the Fuel Tax Act 2006.
92B
Reduction of provisional emissions number
The Opt‑in Scheme may provide that, if:
(a) a person is a designated opt‑in
person; and
(b) under the scheme, the person has a
provisional emissions number for an eligible financial year; and
(c) the conditions set out in the scheme
are satisfied;
that provisional emissions number is to be reduced (but
not below zero) by a number ascertained in accordance with the scheme.
92C
Reporting requirement
Scope
(1) This section applies to a person if the
person is a designated opt‑in person.
Requirement
(2) The Opt‑in Scheme may make provision for
and in relation to requiring the person to give one or more written reports to
the Regulator.
(3) Subsection (2) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 92A(1).
92D
Record‑keeping requirement
Scope
(1) This section applies to a person if the
person is a designated opt‑in person.
Requirement
(2) The Opt‑in Scheme may make provision for
and in relation to requiring the person to:
(a) make records of information
specified in the scheme; and
(b) retain such a record, or a copy,
for 5 years after the record was made.
(3) Subsection (2) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 92A(1).
92E
Other matters
(1) The Opt‑in Scheme may make provision for
and in relation to the following matters:
(a) the approval by the Regulator of a
form of application for a declaration under the scheme;
(b) the information (if any) that must
accompany such an application;
(c) the documents (if any) that must
accompany such an application;
(d) the fee (if any) that must
accompany such an application.
(2) The Opt‑in Scheme may provide for
verification by statutory declaration of statements in applications under the
scheme.
(3) A fee under paragraph (1)(d) must
not be such as to amount to taxation.
(4) This section does not, by implication,
limit subsection 92A(1).
92F
Ancillary or incidental provisions
(1) The Opt‑in Scheme may contain ancillary
or incidental provisions.
(2) Subsection (1) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 92A(1).
92G
Commissioner of Taxation and Chief Executive Officer of Customs to be notified
of declaration
If the Regulator makes a declaration
under the Opt‑in Scheme, the Regulator must give a copy of the declaration to:
(a) the Commissioner of Taxation; and
(b) the Chief Executive Officer of
Customs.
Part 4—Carbon units
Division 1—Introduction
93
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The Regulator may issue
carbon units.
• In a fixed charge year, a
carbon unit may be issued for a fixed charge.
• In a flexible charge year,
a carbon unit may be issued as the result of an auction.
• However, in the flexible
charge years beginning on 1 July 2015, 1 July 2016 and 1 July
2017, some carbon units may be issued for a fixed charge (to act as a cap).
• A carbon pollution cap
limits:
(a) the total
number of auctioned carbon units; and
(b) the total
number of free carbon units issued in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program; and
(c) the total
number of free carbon units issued to coal‑fired electricity generators.
• A carbon unit will have a
vintage year that consists of a particular financial year.
• If a carbon unit was not
issued for a fixed charge, the unit is transferable.
• Entries may be made in
Registry accounts for carbon units.
Division 2—Issue of carbon units
94
Issue of carbon units
The Regulator may, on behalf of the
Commonwealth, issue units, to be known as carbon units.
95
Identification number
A carbon unit is to be identified by a
unique number, to be known as the identification number of the
unit.
96
Vintage year
(1) Each carbon unit has a vintage year.
(2) A vintage year must be a
particular eligible financial year.
(3) The identification number of a carbon
unit must include digits that represent the vintage year of the
unit:
97
When carbon units may be issued
The Regulator may issue a carbon unit
with a particular vintage year at any time before the end of 1 February
next following the vintage year.
Note: For example, the Regulator may, at any time
before the end of 1 February 2018, issue a carbon unit with the vintage
year beginning on 1 July 2016.
98 How
carbon units are to be issued
(1) The Regulator is to issue a carbon unit
to a person by making an entry for the unit in a Registry account kept by the
person.
(2) An entry for a carbon unit in a Registry
account is to consist of the identification number of the unit.
(3) The Regulator must not issue a carbon
unit to a person unless the person has a Registry account.
99
Circumstances in which carbon units may be issued
The Regulator must not issue a carbon
unit otherwise than:
(a) as the result of an auction
conducted by the Regulator; or
(b) in accordance with section 100
(issue of units for a fixed charge); or
(c) in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program; or
(d) in accordance with Part 8
(coal‑fired electricity generation).
100
Issue of carbon units for a fixed charge
Application
(1) During the issue period set out in an
item in the following table, a person may apply to the Regulator for the issue
to the person of a specified number of carbon units:
(a) with a vintage year set out in the
item; and
(b) for the per unit charge set out in
the item;
so long as:
(c) the person is a liable entity for
the vintage year; and
(d) the person has a Registry account.
|
Issue of carbon units
for a fixed charge
|
|
Item
|
Issue period
|
Vintage year
|
Charge per unit
|
|
1
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 April 2013; and
(b) ending at the end of 15 June 2013.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2012
|
$23
|
|
2
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2012; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2014.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2012
|
$23
|
|
3
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 April 2014; and
(b) ending at the end of 15 June 2014.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2013
|
$24.15
|
|
4
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2013; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2015.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2013
|
$24.15
|
|
5
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 April 2015; and
(b) ending at the end of 15 June 2015.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2014
|
$25.40
|
|
6
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2014; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2016.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2014
|
$25.40
|
|
7
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2015; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2017.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2015
|
the amount prescribed by the regulations for the purposes
of this table item
|
|
8
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2016; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2018.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2016
|
the amount obtained by multiplying the per unit charge
applicable under item 7 by 1.07625
|
|
9
|
The period:
(a) beginning at the emissions number publication time of the
person for the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2017; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February 2019.
|
the eligible financial year beginning on 1 July 2017
|
the amount obtained by multiplying the per unit charge
applicable under item 8 by 1.07625
|
Note: For emissions number publication time,
see section 5.
(2) A person is not entitled to make an
application during an issue period set out in item 7, 8 or 9 of the table
in subsection (1) if no regulations are in force for the purposes of item 7
of the table.
Maximum number of units—table items 1, 3 and 5
(3) An application made during an issue
period set out in item 1, 3 or 5 of the table in subsection (1) must
not specify a number of carbon units that exceeds the number worked out using
the following formula:

Maximum number of units—table items 2, 4, 6, 7, 8
and 9
(4) An application made during an issue
period set out in item 2, 4, 6, 7, 8 or 9 of the table in subsection (1)
must not specify a number of carbon units that exceeds the number worked out
using the following formula:

Form of application
(5) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in a form approved, in writing,
by the Regulator.
Issue of units
(6) If, during an issue period set out in an
item in the table in subsection (1):
(a) a person has applied for a
specified number of carbon units with a particular vintage year; and
(b) the person has tendered the total
amount of charges payable for, or imposed on, the issue of the units;
the Regulator must, as soon as practicable, issue to the
person that number of carbon units with that vintage year.
Automatic surrender of units
(7) If a carbon unit is issued to a person in
accordance with this section:
(a) immediately after the issue of the
unit, the person is taken to have surrendered the unit; and
(b) the person is taken to have done
so by electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator under subsection 122(1);
and
(c) the notice is taken to have:
(i) specified the unit;
and
(ii) specified the vintage
year of the unit as the eligible financial year to which the surrender relates;
and
(iii) specified the account
number of the person’s Registry account in which there is an entry for the unit
that is being surrendered.
(8) A carbon unit issued to a person in
accordance with this section cannot be transferred or relinquished.
Publication of fixed charge
(9) Before the start of each of the following
eligible financial years:
(a) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2015;
(b) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2016;
(c) the eligible financial year
beginning on 1 July 2017;
the Regulator must publish on its website the per unit
charge applicable under subsection (1) for the issue of a carbon unit with
a vintage year of that eligible financial year.
Charge payable
(10) If a carbon unit is issued to a person in
accordance with this section, the person is liable to pay a charge for the
issue of the unit.
(11) Subsection (10) has effect only so
far as it is not a law imposing taxation within the meaning of section 55
of the Constitution.
Note: See also:
(a) Part 2 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011; and
(b) Part 2 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011; and
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Fixed Charge)
Act 2011.
(12) The amount of charge payable under subsection (10)
for the issue of a carbon unit is the amount equal to the per unit charge set
out in the application under subsection (1) for the issue of the unit.
Recovery of charge
(13) If a carbon unit is issued in accordance
with this section, an amount of charge payable for, or imposed on, the issue of
the unit:
(a) is a debt due to the Commonwealth;
and
(b) may be recovered by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, by action in a court of competent jurisdiction.
Regulations
(14) The Minister must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that regulations are made for the purposes of item 7 of
the table in subsection (1) before 31 May 2014.
(15) Regulations must not be made for the
purposes of item 7 of the table in subsection (1) on or after 1 June
2015.
100A
Extension of issue period
Scope
(1) This section applies if the Regulator is
satisfied that:
(a) 2 or more persons were unable to
apply to the Regulator under section 100 for the issue of carbon units
during the whole or a part of the last day (the relevant day) of
an issue period set out in an item in the table in subsection 100(1); and
(b) the inability to make the
application was attributable to:
(i) a fault or malfunction
relating to a computer system under the control of the Regulator; or
(ii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a facility (within the meaning of the Telecommunications Act
1997); or
(iii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a carriage service (within the meaning of that Act) provided to the
public; and
(c) it would be reasonable to extend
the issue period during which the application may be made beyond the relevant
day.
Extension of issue period
(2) The Regulator may, by legislative
instrument, determine that this Act has effect as if:
(a) the reference in the table to the
relevant day were a reference to such later day as is specified in the
determination; and
(b) if the relevant day is a 1 February—the
reference in section 97 to that 1 February were a reference to that
later day.
(3) If the Regulator makes a determination
under this section, the Regulator must publish a copy of the determination on
its website.
101
Limit on issue of carbon units
(1) The Regulator must ensure that not more
than 15 million carbon units with a particular vintage year are issued as a
result of auctions that were conducted by the Regulator during a financial year
if:
(a) the financial year begins more
than 12 months before the start of the vintage year; and
(b) there are no regulations in effect
that declare the carbon pollution cap, and the carbon pollution cap number, for
the vintage year.
(2) The Regulator must ensure that not more
than 15 million carbon units with a particular vintage year are issued as a
result of auctions that were conducted by the Regulator during the first 6
months of the financial year immediately preceding the vintage year if there
are no regulations in effect that declare the carbon pollution cap, and the carbon
pollution cap number, for the vintage year.
102
Carbon units—total number
(1) The Regulator must ensure that the sum
of:
(a) the total number of carbon units
with a particular vintage year that are offered at auctions conducted by the
Regulator; and
(b) the total number of free carbon
units with that vintage year issued in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program; and
(c) the total number of free carbon
units with that vintage year issued in accordance with Part 8 (coal‑fired
electricity generation);
equals the carbon pollution cap number for that vintage
year.
(2) If a carbon unit is offered at auction on
2 or more occasions, the unit is only counted for the purposes of paragraph (1)(a)
on the first of those occasions.
(3) Paragraph (1)(a) does not apply to
an auction conducted under section 112.
Division 3—Property in, and transfer of, carbon units
103 A
carbon unit is personal property
A carbon unit is personal property and,
subject to sections 105 and 106, is transmissible by assignment, by will
and by devolution by operation of law.
103A
Ownership of carbon unit
(1) The registered holder of a carbon unit:
(a) is the legal owner of the unit;
and
(b) may, subject to this Act and the Australian
National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011, deal with the unit as its
legal owner and give good discharges for any consideration for any such
dealing.
(2) Subsection (1) only protects a
person who deals with the registered holder of the unit as a purchaser:
(a) in good faith for value; and
(b) without notice of any defect in
the title of the registered holder.
104
Transfer of carbon units
(1) For the purposes of this Act, if there is
an entry for a carbon unit in a Registry account (the first Registry
account) kept by a person (the first person):
(a) a transfer of the
unit from the first Registry account to a Registry account kept by another
person consists of:
(i) the removal of the
entry for the unit from the first Registry account; and
(ii) the making of an entry
for the unit in the Registry account kept by the other person; and
(b) the transfer of the
unit from the first Registry account to another Registry account kept by the
first person consists of:
(i) the removal of the
entry for the unit from the first Registry account; and
(ii) the making of an entry
for the unit in the other Registry account kept by the first person; and
(c) the transfer of the
unit from the first Registry account to a foreign account kept by another
person consists of:
(i) the removal of the
entry for the unit from the first Registry account; and
(ii) the making of an entry
for the unit in the foreign account kept by the other person; and
(d) the transfer of the
unit from the first Registry account to a foreign account kept by the first
person consists of:
(i) the removal of the
entry for the unit from the first Registry account; and
(ii) the making of an entry
for the unit in the foreign account kept by the first person.
(2) For the purposes of this Act, if there is
an entry for a carbon unit in a foreign account, a transfer of
the unit from the foreign account to a Registry account consists of:
(a) the removal of the entry for the
unit from the foreign account; and
(b) the making of an entry for the
unit in the Registry account.
105
Transmission of carbon units by assignment
(1) A transmission by assignment of a carbon
unit for which there is an entry in a Registry account is of no force until:
(a) the transferor, by electronic
notice transmitted to the Regulator, instructs the Regulator to transfer the
unit from the relevant Registry account kept by the transferor to a Registry
account kept by the transferee; and
(b) the Regulator complies with that
instruction.
(2) An instruction under paragraph (1)(a)
must set out:
(a) the account number of the
transferor’s Registry account; and
(b) the account number of the
transferee’s Registry account.
(3) If the Regulator receives an instruction
under paragraph (1)(a), the Regulator must comply with the instruction as
soon as practicable after receiving it.
(4) The Registry must set out a record of
each instruction under paragraph (1)(a).
(5) If the transferor is the Commonwealth,
the Minister may give an instruction under subsection (1) on behalf of the
transferor.
106
Transmission of carbon units by operation of law etc.
Scope
(1) This section applies if a carbon unit for
which there is an entry in a Registry account is transmitted from a person (the
transferor) to another person (the transferee) by
any lawful means other than by a transfer under section 105.
Effect of transmission
(2) The transmission is of no force until the
Regulator transfers the carbon unit under subsection (9) or (10).
Declaration of transmission
(3) The transferee must, within 90 days after
the transmission, give the Regulator:
(a) a declaration of transmission; and
(b) such evidence of transmission as
is specified in the regulations.
(4) A declaration of transmission must be
made in accordance with the regulations.
(5) If the transferee does not already have a
Registry account, the declaration of transmission must be accompanied by a
request, under regulations made for the purposes of subsection 10(1) of the Australian
National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011, for the Regulator to open a
Registry account in the name of the transferee.
Extension of period
(6) If the Regulator is satisfied that
special circumstances warrant the extension of the 90‑day period mentioned in subsection (3),
the Regulator may extend that period.
(7) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (6):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the transferor or the transferee; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
(8) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
extend the 90‑day period mentioned in subsection (3); and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application by the transferor or the transferee;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the transferor or the transferee, as the case may be.
Transfer of unit—transferee already has a Registry
account
(9) If the transferee already has a Registry
account, the Regulator must, as soon as practicable after receiving the
declaration of transmission, transfer the unit from the relevant Registry
account kept by the transferor to a Registry account kept by the transferee.
Transfer of unit—transferee does not have a Registry
account
(10) If:
(a) the transferee does not already
have a Registry account; and
(b) in accordance with the request
under regulations made for the purposes of subsection 10(1) of the Australian
National Registry of Emissions Units Act 2011, the Regulator has opened a
Registry account in the name of the transferee;
the Regulator must, as soon as practicable after opening
the Registry account, transfer the unit from the relevant Registry account kept
by the transferor to the Registry account kept by the transferee.
Record
(11) If the Regulator transfers the unit under subsection (9)
or (10), the Registry must set out a record of the declaration of transmission.
When the transferee is the Commonwealth
(12) If the transferee is the Commonwealth, the
Minister may give:
(a) the declaration of transmission;
and
(b) the evidence mentioned in paragraph (3)(b);
on behalf of the transferee.
107
Transfer of carbon units to another Registry account held by the transferor
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person keeps a Registry account
(the first Registry account) in which there is an entry for a
carbon unit; and
(b) the person, by electronic notice transmitted
to the Regulator, instructs the Regulator to transfer the unit from the first
Registry account to another Registry account kept by the person; and
(c) the instruction sets out:
(i) the account number of
the first Registry account; and
(ii) the account number of
the other Registry account.
Compliance with instruction
(2) If a person gives the Regulator an
instruction under paragraph (1)(b), the Regulator must comply with the
instruction as soon as practicable after receiving it.
(3) The Registry must set out a record of the
instruction under paragraph (1)(b).
108
Outgoing international transfers of carbon units
(1) If a person (the first person)
is the registered holder of one or more carbon units, the person may, by
electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator, instruct the Regulator to
transfer the units from the relevant Registry account kept by the person (the first
Registry account) to:
(a) a foreign account kept by another
person; or
(b) a foreign account kept by the
first person.
(2) An instruction under subsection (1)
must set out:
(a) the account number of the relevant
Registry account kept by the first person; and
(b) such other information as is
specified in the regulations.
Compliance with instruction
(3) If:
(a) the Regulator receives an
instruction under subsection (1); and
(b) either:
(i) the instruction is
given on or after 1 July 2018; or
(ii) the foreign account is
kept within a prescribed foreign registry; and
(c) the conditions (if any) specified
in the regulations are satisfied; and
(d) each of the carbon units has a
vintage year that is a flexible charge year;
the Regulator must take such steps as are required by the
regulations.
(4) Regulations made for the purposes of subsection (3)
may require the Regulator to remove the entry for the unit or units from the
relevant Registry account.
(5) Subsection (4) does not limit subsection (3).
(6) A foreign registry must not be prescribed
for the purposes of subparagraph (3)(b)(ii) unless:
(a) there is in force an international
agreement between Australia and the foreign country in which the registry is
located; and
(b) the agreement deals with the
transfer of carbon units to foreign accounts kept within the registry.
(7) If the Regulator takes steps under subsection (3)
in relation to an instruction, the Registry must set out a record of the
instruction.
(8) If the first person is the Commonwealth,
the Minister may give an instruction under subsection (1) on behalf of the
first person.
109
Incoming international transfers of carbon units
(1) If:
(a) the Regulator receives an
instruction for the transfer of a carbon unit from a foreign account; and
(b) the conditions (if any) specified
in the regulations are satisfied;
the Regulator must make an entry for the carbon unit in
the relevant Registry account.
(2) However, the Regulator may refuse to make
an entry for the carbon unit in the relevant Registry account if the Regulator
has reasonable grounds to suspect that the instruction is fraudulent.
(3) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
make an entry for the carbon unit in the relevant Registry account, the Regulator
must give written notice of the decision to the person who gave the
instruction.
109A
Registration of equitable interests in relation to a carbon unit
(1) The regulations may make provision for or
in relation to the registration in the Registry of equitable interests in
relation to carbon units.
(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to an
equitable interest that is a security interest within the meaning of the Personal
Property Securities Act 2009, and to which that Act applies.
110
Equitable interests in relation to a carbon unit
(1) This Act does not affect:
(a) the creation of; or
(b) any dealings with; or
(c) the enforcement of;
equitable interests in relation to a carbon unit.
(2) Subsection (1) is enacted for the
avoidance of doubt.
Division 4—Auctions of carbon units
111
Issue of carbon units as the result of an auction
Auction
(1) The Regulator may issue carbon units as
the result of an auction conducted by the Regulator.
Issue of units
(2) The Regulator must not issue one or more
carbon units to a person as the result of an auction unless:
(a) the person has tendered the total amount
of charges payable for, or imposed on, the issue of the units; or
(b) both:
(i) the person has lodged
a deposit that relates to the total amount of charges payable for, or imposed
on, the issue of the units; and
(ii) the person has
tendered the balance of the total amount of the charges.
Note: For rules about deposits, see section 113.
Charge payable
(3) If a carbon unit is issued to a person as
a result of an auction, the person is liable to pay a charge for the issue of
the unit.
(4) Subsection (3) has effect only so
far as it is not a law imposing taxation within the meaning of section 55
of the Constitution.
Note: See also:
(a) Part 2 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011; and
(b) Part 2 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011; and
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Auctions) Act
2011.
Amount of charge
(5) The amount of charge payable under subsection (3)
for the issue of a carbon unit is the amount equal to the amount the person
indicated or declared, in the course of the auction, that the person would be
willing to pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit, so long as:
(a) in a case where:
(i) the unit has the
vintage year beginning on 1 July 2015; and
(ii) regulations are in
force for the purposes of section 8 of the Clean Energy (International
Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011 in relation to the surrender of an eligible
international emissions unit in relation to the vintage year;
the amount the person indicated
or declared, in the course of the auction, that the person would be willing to
pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit is not less than:
(iii) $15; or
(iv) if a greater amount is prescribed
for the purposes of this subparagraph—that greater amount; and
(b) in a case where:
(i) the unit has the
vintage year beginning on 1 July 2016; and
(ii) regulations are in
force for the purposes of section 8 of the Clean Energy (International
Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011 in relation to the surrender of an eligible
international emissions unit in relation to the vintage year;
the amount the person indicated
or declared, in the course of the auction, that the person would be willing to
pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit is not less than:
(iii) $16; or
(iv) if a greater amount is prescribed
for the purposes of this subparagraph—that greater amount; and
(c) in a case where:
(i) the unit has the
vintage year beginning on 1 July 2017; and
(ii) regulations are in
force for the purposes of section 8 of the Clean Energy (International
Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011 in relation to the surrender of an eligible
international emissions unit in relation to the vintage year;
the amount the person indicated
or declared, in the course of the auction, that the person would be willing to
pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit is not less than:
(iii) $17.05; or
(iv) if a greater amount is prescribed
for the purposes of this subparagraph—that greater amount; and
(d) in a case where:
(i) none of the above
paragraphs apply; and
(ii) under the regulations,
an amount is taken to be the reserve charge amount in relation to the auction;
the amount the person indicated
or declared, in the course of the auction, that the person would be willing to
pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit is not less than that reserve
charge amount.
(6) Subsection (5) does not apply to an
amount the person indicated or declared, in the course of the auction, that the
person would be willing to pay by way of charge for the issue of the unit,
unless the amount was accepted by the Regulator in the course of the auction.
Recovery of charge
(7) If:
(a) charge is payable for, or imposed
on, the issue of a carbon unit; and
(b) the unit is issued as the result
of an auction;
an amount of charge payable for, or imposed on, the issue
of the unit:
(c) is a debt due to the Commonwealth;
and
(d) may be recovered by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, by action in a court of competent jurisdiction.
Charge must not be arbitrary
(8) The Regulator must not perform any of its
functions, or exercise any of its powers, in relation to an auction in a way
that would contravene the constitutional requirement that taxation must not be
arbitrary.
112
Secondary market auctions of relinquished carbon units
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is an entry
for a carbon unit in the Commonwealth relinquished units account.
Regulator may auction unit
(2) The Regulator may, on behalf of the
Commonwealth, auction the unit.
Combined auctions
(3) The Regulator may conduct an auction
under this section in combination with an auction mentioned in section 111.
113
Policies, procedures and rules for auctioning carbon units
(1) The Minister may, by legislative
instrument, determine the policies, procedures and rules that apply in relation
to the auctioning of carbon units by the Regulator.
(2) A determination under subsection (1)
may deal with any or all of the following matters:
(a) the types of auction;
(b) the timing of auctions;
(c) advertising of auctions;
(d) participants in auctions;
(e) fees for participants in auctions;
(f) proxy bidding;
(g) representatives of participants in
auctions;
(h) the minimum number of carbon units
to which a bid may relate;
(i) variation of bids;
(j) the total number of carbon units
with a particular vintage year that are to be offered at a particular auction
under section 111;
(k) limits on the total number of carbon
units with a particular vintage year that may be acquired by a person as a
result of a particular auction;
(l) limits on the total number of carbon
units with a particular vintage year that may be acquired by the members of a
controlling corporation’s group as a result of a particular auction;
(m) in the case of an auction under
section 112—reserve prices (if any);
(n) deposits (if any) to be lodged by
participants in auctions;
(o) the refund or forfeiture of such
deposits;
(p) guarantees (if any) to be given in
respect of payment obligations that are incurred by participants in auctions;
(q) securities (if any) to be lodged
in respect of payment obligations that are incurred by participants in
auctions;
(r) in the case of an auction under
section 111—timing and methods of payment of charges;
(s) in the case of an auction under
section 112—timing and methods of payment of prices.
(3) Subsection (2) does not limit subsection (1).
(4) A fee specified under paragraph (2)(e)
must not be such as to amount to taxation.
(5) A determination under subsection (1)
may make provision in relation to a matter by conferring a power to make a
decision of an administrative character on the Regulator.
(6) A determination under subsection (1)
may:
(a) empower the Regulator to
disqualify a person from participating in auctions; and
(b) provide that the Regulator, in
exercising such a power, may have regard to:
(i) the person’s record in
relation to compliance with the determination; and
(ii) such other matters (if
any) as are specified in the determination; and
(iii) such other matters (if
any) as the Regulator considers relevant.
(7) Subsection (6) does not limit subsection (5).
(8) To avoid doubt, a determination under subsection (1)
is taken to be a law for the purposes of section 28 of the Financial
Management and Accountability Act 1997.
(9) To avoid doubt, the Regulator may auction
carbon units even if no determination is in force under subsection (1).
114
Benchmark average auction charge
(1) For the purposes of this Act, the benchmark
average auction charge for a financial year is whichever is the greater
of the following amounts:
(a) the amount calculated under subsection (2)
in relation to the financial year;
(b) the amount calculated under subsection (3)
in relation to the financial year.
Average auction charge—all auctions
(2) The amount calculated under this
subsection in relation to a financial year is the amount worked out using the
formula:

where:
number of units issued as the result of auctions
means the total number of carbon units that were issued as the result of
auctions conducted by the Regulator during the financial year.
total auction proceeds means the total amount
paid or payable by way of charges for the issue of carbon units that were
issued as the result of auctions conducted by the Regulator during the
financial year.
Average auction charge—last auction
(3) The amount calculated under this
subsection in relation to a financial year is the amount worked out using the
formula:

where:
number of units issued as a result of the last
auction means the number of carbon units that:
(a) have a vintage year of that
financial year; and
(b) were issued as a result of the
last auction of carbon units with that vintage year that was conducted by the Regulator
during the financial year.
proceeds of the last auction means the total
amount paid or payable by way of charges for the issue of carbon units that:
(a) have a vintage year of that
financial year; and
(b) were issued as a result of the
last auction of carbon units with that vintage year that was conducted by the
Regulator during the financial year.
Regulator to calculate and publish benchmark average
auction charge
(4) As soon as practicable after the end of
each financial year, the Regulator must:
(a) calculate the benchmark average
auction charge for the financial year; and
(b) publish on its website a notice
setting out the results of that calculation.
Division 5—Special provisions relating to free carbon units
115
Cancellation of certain unused free carbon units
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a carbon unit was issued:
(i) in accordance with the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program; or
(ii) in accordance with
Part 8 (coal‑fired electricity generation); and
(b) the unit has a vintage year that
is a fixed charge year; and
(c) there was an entry for the unit in
a person’s Registry account at the end of 1 February next following that
fixed charge year.
Cancellation of unit
(2) The Regulator must cancel the unit.
(3) The Regulator must remove the entry for
the unit from the person’s Registry account.
(4) The Registry must set out a record of
each cancellation under subsection (2).
116
Buy‑back of certain free carbon units
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person is the
registered holder of one or more carbon units that:
(a) were issued:
(i) in accordance with the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program; or
(ii) in accordance with
Part 8 (coal‑fired electricity generation); and
(b) have a vintage year that is a
fixed charge year.
Buy‑back
(2) During the period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 September
in that fixed charge year; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February
next following that fixed charge year;
the person may, by electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator,
request the Regulator to cancel the unit or units in exchange for the payment
to the person of the amount (the buy‑back amount) worked out
using the formula:

where:
fixed charge means the per unit charge
applicable under subsection 100(1) for the issue of a carbon unit with a
vintage year of that fixed charge year.
(3) If the Regulator receives a request under
subsection (2) from a person in relation to one or more carbon units, the Regulator
must:
(a) on a day ascertained in
accordance with the regulations:
(i) cancel the unit or
units; and
(ii) remove the entries for
the unit or units from the person’s Registry account in which there is an entry
for the unit or units; and
(b) on or as soon as practicable after
that day, on behalf of the Commonwealth, pay the buy‑back amount to the person.
(4) The Registry must set out a record of
each cancellation under subsection (3).
(5) The Consolidated Revenue Fund is
appropriated for the purposes of making payments under this section.
116A
Extension of buy‑back period
Scope
(1) This section applies if the Regulator is
satisfied that:
(a) 2 or more persons were unable to
make a request under subsection 116(2) during the whole or a part of 1 February
next following a fixed charge year; and
(b) the inability to make the request
was attributable to:
(i) a fault or malfunction
relating to a computer system under the control of the Regulator; or
(ii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a facility (within the meaning of the Telecommunications Act
1997); or
(iii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a carriage service (within the meaning of that Act) provided to the
public; and
(c) it would be reasonable to extend
the deadline for making requests under subsection 116(2) beyond the end of that
1 February.
Extension of buy‑back period
(2) The Regulator may, by legislative
instrument, determine that this Act has effect as if a reference in each of the
following provisions to the end of that 1 February were a reference to
such later time as is specified in the determination:
(a) paragraph 115(1)(c);
(b) paragraph 116(2)(b).
(3) If the Regulator makes a determination under
this section, the Regulator must publish a copy of the determination on its
website.
Part 5—Emissions number
117
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• If a person is a liable
entity for a financial year, the person’s emissions number for the financial
year is the total of the person’s provisional emissions numbers for the
financial year.
• The Regulator may make an
advisory assessment of a person’s emissions number for a financial year.
Note: An emissions number is reported under section 22A
of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
118
Emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person is a
liable entity for an eligible financial year.
Emissions number
(2) For the purposes of this Act, the person’s
emissions number for the eligible financial year is the total of
the person’s provisional emissions numbers (if any) for the eligible financial
year.
(3) If the person’s emissions number for the eligible
financial year is not a whole number, the emissions number is to be rounded to
the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5 being rounded down). For
this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
119
Assessment of emissions number—incorrect report given by liable entity
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a report relating to an eligible
financial year was given under section 22A of the National Greenhouse
and Energy Reporting Act 2007 by a person who was a liable entity for the
eligible financial year; and
(b) the report was given before the
end of 4 months after the end of the eligible financial year; and
(c) the Regulator has reasonable
grounds to believe that the number specified in the report as the person’s
emissions number for the eligible financial year is incorrect.
Assessment
(2) The Regulator may:
(a) make an assessment of the person’s
emissions number for the eligible financial year; and
(b) give written notice of the
assessment to the person.
(3) A notice of assessment under paragraph (2)(b)
must be accompanied by:
(a) if the assessment was made before
the end of 1 February next following the eligible financial year—a
statement explaining that the person may need to acquire and surrender eligible
emissions units to avoid being liable for unit shortfall charge; or
(b) otherwise—a statement explaining
that the person may be liable to pay:
(i) unit shortfall charge;
and
(ii) late payment penalty
under section 135 in respect of that unit shortfall charge.
Amendment of assessments
(4) The Regulator may amend an assessment
under this section at any time.
(5) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (4):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the person to whom the assessment relates; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
(6) If the Regulator amends an assessment,
the Regulator must give written notice of the amendment to the person to whom
the assessment relates.
(7) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
amend an assessment; and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application by the person to whom the assessment relates;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the person.
(8) For the purposes of this Act, an amended
assessment is taken to be an assessment under this section.
Advisory character of assessment
(9) A notice of assessment under this section
is an instrument of an advisory character.
120
Assessment of emissions number—no report given by liable entity
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person has not, before the end
of 4 months after the end of an eligible financial year, given a report under
section 22A of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007
in relation to the eligible financial year; and
(b) the Regulator has reasonable
grounds to believe that the person is a liable entity for the eligible
financial year.
Assessment
(2) The Regulator may:
(a) make an assessment of the person’s
emissions number for the eligible financial year; and
(b) give written notice of the
assessment to the person.
(3) A notice of assessment under paragraph (2)(b)
must be accompanied by:
(a) if the assessment was made before
the end of 1 February next following the eligible financial year—a
statement explaining that the person may need to acquire and surrender eligible
emissions units to avoid being liable for unit shortfall charge; or
(b) otherwise—a statement explaining
that the person may be liable to pay:
(i) unit shortfall charge;
and
(ii) late payment penalty
under section 135 in respect of that unit shortfall charge.
Amendment of assessments
(4) The Regulator may amend an assessment
under this section at any time.
(5) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (4):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the person to whom the assessment relates; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
(6) If the Regulator amends an assessment,
the Regulator must give written notice of the amendment to the person to whom
the assessment relates.
(7) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
amend an assessment; and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application by the person to whom the assessment relates;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the person.
(8) For the purposes of this Act, an amended
assessment is taken to be an assessment under this section.
Advisory character of assessment
(9) A notice of assessment under this section
is an instrument of an advisory character.
Part 6—Surrender of eligible emissions units
Division 1—Introduction
121
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• If a person is the
registered holder of one or more eligible emissions units, the person may, by
electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator, surrender any or all of those
units.
• If a person is a liable
entity for a fixed charge year, the person will have a provisional unit
shortfall (and be liable to pay unit shortfall charge) if the person does not
surrender, by the end of 15 June in that year, a number of eligible
emissions units equal to the total of the person’s interim emissions numbers
for the year.
• Generally, an interim
emissions number is calculated by reference to 75% of the corresponding provisional
emissions number.
• If a person is a liable
entity for a fixed charge year, the person will have a final unit shortfall (and
be liable to pay unit shortfall charge) if the number of eligible emissions
units surrendered by the person after 15 June in that year and before the
next 1 February, together with the total of the person’s interim emissions
numbers, does not equal the person’s emissions number for the year.
• If a person is a liable
entity for a flexible charge year, the person will have a unit shortfall (and
be liable to pay unit shortfall charge) if the person does not, before the end
of the next 1 February, surrender a number of eligible emissions units
equal to the person’s emissions number for the year.
• A surplus surrender in a
fixed charge year will result in a refund payment.
• A surplus surrender in a
flexible charge year may be carried forward to reduce any unit shortfall for
the next financial year.
• The number of eligible
international emissions units surrendered for any of the first 5 flexible
charge years must not exceed 50% of the person’s emissions number for the year.
• An eligible international
emissions unit cannot be surrendered for a fixed charge year.
• There are restrictions on
the types of eligible international emissions units that can be surrendered.
• An eligible international
emissions unit cannot be surrendered in relation to the first 3 flexible charge
years unless the person pays the charge imposed on that surrender.
• The Regulator may make an
advisory assessment of a person’s unit shortfall and the unit shortfall charge
payable on that shortfall.
Note 1: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
Note 2: Charge on the surrender of an eligible
international emissions unit is imposed by the Clean Energy (International
Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011. The charge complements the minimum reserve
auction charge for units issued in the first 3 flexible charge years.
Division 2—How eligible emissions units are surrendered
122
How eligible emissions units are surrendered
(1) If a person is the registered holder of
one or more eligible emissions units, the person may, by electronic notice
transmitted to the Regulator during an eligible financial year, surrender any
or all of those units.
Note: A liable entity may surrender units to avoid
liability for a unit shortfall charge.
(2) A notice under subsection (1) must:
(a) specify the eligible emissions
unit or units that are being surrendered; and
(b) specify the eligible financial
year to which the surrender relates; and
(c) specify the account number or
account numbers of the person’s Registry account, or the person’s Registry
accounts, in which there is an entry or entries for the eligible emissions unit
or units that are being surrendered.
(3) The eligible financial year specified
under paragraph (2)(b) must be:
(a) the eligible financial year in
which the electronic notice was transmitted; or
(b) an earlier eligible financial
year.
(4) A carbon unit must not be surrendered in
relation to an eligible financial year unless that eligible financial year is:
(a) the vintage year of the unit; or
(b) an eligible financial year later
than the vintage year of the unit; or
(c) the eligible financial year
immediately preceding the vintage year of the unit.
Note: See also subsection 133(6) (borrowing limit).
(5) A person must not surrender, in relation
to an eligible financial year, a carbon unit that has a vintage year that next
follows the eligible financial year unless the electronic notice is transmitted
after the emissions number publication time of the person for the eligible
financial year.
Note: For emissions number publication time,
see section 5.
(6) A carbon unit must not be surrendered in
relation to an eligible financial year that is a fixed charge year unless the
unit has a vintage year of that eligible financial year.
(7) If:
(a) a carbon unit was issued:
(i) in accordance with the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program; or
(ii) in accordance with
Part 8 (coal‑fired electricity generation); and
(b) the unit has a vintage year that
is a fixed charge year;
the unit must not be surrendered in relation to an eligible
financial year unless that eligible financial year is the vintage year of the
unit.
(8) An eligible international emissions unit
must not be surrendered in relation to an eligible financial year that is a
fixed charge year.
(9) An eligible international emissions unit must
not be surrendered if the surrender would breach regulations made for the
purposes of subsection 123(1) (surrender restrictions).
(10) If a carbon unit is surrendered by a
person:
(a) the unit is cancelled; and
(b) the Regulator must remove the
entry for the unit from the person’s Registry account in which there is an
entry for the unit.
(11) If an eligible international emissions
unit is surrendered by a person:
(a) the Regulator must take such
action in relation to the unit as is specified in the regulations; and
(b) the Regulator must remove the
entry for the unit from the person’s Registry account in which there is an
entry for the unit.
(12) If an eligible Australian carbon credit
unit is surrendered by a person:
(a) the unit is cancelled; and
(b) the Regulator must remove the
entry for the unit from the person’s Registry account in which there is an
entry for the unit.
(13) The Registry must set out a record of each
notice under subsection (1).
123
Surrender restrictions
(1) The regulations may make provision for,
or in relation to, prohibiting the surrender of specified eligible
international emissions units.
Note: For specification by class, see subsection
13(3) of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003.
(2) In making a recommendation to the
Governor‑General about regulations to be made for the purposes of subsection (1),
the Minister may have regard to:
(a) Australia’s international
objectives; and
(b) Australia’s international
obligations (including obligations under international climate change
agreements); and
(c) the environmental integrity of
this Act and the associated provisions; and
(d) any relevant report given to the
Minister by the Climate Change Authority under Part 22; and
(e) the extent to which eligible
international emissions units may be surrendered, accepted or used for the
purposes of:
(i) the Climate Change
Response Act 2002 of New Zealand; or
(ii) the European Union
emissions trading scheme; and
(f) such other matters (if any) as
the Minister considers relevant.
(3) If:
(a) regulations are made for the
purposes of subsection (1); and
(b) the regulations are registered
under the Legislative Instruments Act 2003 during an eligible financial
year;
the regulations do not apply to the surrender of eligible
international emissions units in relation to the eligible financial year.
124
Charge on surrender of eligible international emissions units
(1) If:
(a) a person surrenders an eligible
international emissions unit in relation to:
(i) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2015; or
(ii) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2016; or
(iii) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2017; and
(b) charge is imposed by the Clean
Energy (International Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011 on that surrender;
and
(c) the person does not tender the
charge at or about the same time as the notice of surrender is given under
subsection 122(1);
the surrender is to be disregarded for the purpose of this
Act (other than this Division).
Recovery of charge
(2) If charge is imposed by the Clean
Energy (International Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011 on the surrender of an
eligible international emissions unit, the amount of the charge:
(a) is a debt due to the Commonwealth;
and
(b) may be recovered by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, by action in a court of competent jurisdiction.
Division 3—Unit shortfalls
Subdivision A—Fixed charge years
125
Provisional unit shortfall
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year (the relevant eligible financial year);
and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Unit shortfall
(2) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) exceeds zero:
(a) the person has a unit shortfall
under this section for the relevant eligible financial year; and
(b) the number of units in that
shortfall is equal to the number worked out using that formula.
Note: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
No unit shortfall
(3) If the number worked out using the formula
in subsection (5) is zero, the person does not have a unit shortfall under
this section for the relevant eligible financial year.
Provisional surplus surrender number
(4) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is less than zero:
(a) the person has a provisional
surplus surrender number for the relevant eligible financial year; and
(b) the provisional surplus surrender
number is equal to the number worked out using that formula (expressed as a
positive).
Formula
(5) The formula is as follows:

where:
number of units surrendered by 15 June
means the number of eligible emissions units that were surrendered by the
person, in relation to the relevant eligible financial year, before the end of
15 June in the relevant eligible financial year.
total interim emissions numbers means the
total of the interim emissions numbers of the person for the relevant eligible
financial year.
Note: See also section 127.
(6) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is not a whole number, the number is to be
rounded to the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5 being rounded
up). For this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
Eligible Australian carbon credit units—surrender limit
(7) If:
(a) before the end of 15 June in
the relevant eligible financial year, the person surrendered, in relation to
the relevant eligible financial year, eligible Australian carbon credit units;
and
(b) the number of eligible Australian
carbon credit units exceeds 5% of the total of the interim emissions numbers of
the person for the relevant eligible financial year;
then:
(c) subsection (5) has effect as
if the person had not, before the end of 15 June in the relevant eligible
financial year, surrendered, in relation to the relevant eligible financial
year, the number of eligible Australian carbon credit units that equals the
excess; and
(d) section 128 has effect as if
the person had, during the period:
(i) beginning immediately
after the end of 15 June in the relevant eligible financial year; and
(ii) ending at the end of 1 February
next following the relevant eligible financial year;
surrendered, in relation to the relevant
eligible financial year, the number of eligible Australian carbon credit units
that equals the excess.
126
Interim emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person (the relevant
person) is a liable entity for an eligible financial year (the relevant
eligible financial year); and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Direct emitter
(2) For the purposes of this Act, if:
(a) one or more persons (who may
consist of or include the relevant person) had a provisional emissions number
for the previous eligible financial year under a particular provision of Division 2
of Part 3 in so far as that provision applies to a particular facility;
and
(b) the relevant person is likely to
have a provisional emissions number for the relevant eligible financial year
under that provision in so far as that provision applies to that facility;
then:
(c) the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (3) is an interim emissions number of
the person for the relevant eligible financial year; or
(d) if:
(i) the conditions
specified in the regulations are satisfied; and
(ii) a lesser number is
ascertained in accordance with the regulations;
the lesser number is an interim
emissions number of the person for the relevant eligible financial
year.
(3) The formula is as follows:

where:
total provisional emissions numbers means the
total of the provisional emissions numbers referred to in paragraph (2)(a).
(4) For the purposes of this Act, if, before
the end of 15 June in the relevant eligible financial year, the person
gives the Regulator, in writing, a reasonable estimate of 75% of the
provisional emissions number of the person for the relevant eligible financial
year under a particular provision of Division 2 of Part 3 in so far
as that provision applies to a particular facility:
(a) the estimate is an interim
emissions number of the person for the relevant eligible financial year;
and
(b) subsection (2) does not apply
to the person in relation to the facility for the relevant eligible financial
year.
(5) If the number worked out using the formula
in subsection (3) is not a whole number, the number is to be rounded to
the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5 being rounded up). For
this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
(6) For the purposes of subsection (2),
if the relevant eligible financial year began on 1 July 2012, assume that
the financial year that began on 1 July 2011 was an eligible financial
year.
Natural gas supplier etc.
(7) For the purposes of this Act, if a
particular number would have been the provisional emissions number of the
person for the relevant eligible financial year under a particular provision of
Division 3 of Part 3 if it were assumed that the relevant eligible
financial year ended at the end of 31 March in the relevant eligible
financial year, the number is an interim emissions number of the
person for the relevant eligible financial year.
Opt‑in Scheme
(8) For the purposes of this Act, if a
particular number would have been the provisional emissions number of the
person for the relevant eligible financial year under the Opt‑in Scheme if it
were assumed that the relevant eligible financial year ended at the end of 31 March
in the relevant eligible financial year, the number is an interim
emissions number of the person for the relevant eligible financial
year.
127 Adjustment
of total interim emissions numbers
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year (the relevant eligible financial year);
and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year; and
(c) the person has one or more
provisional emissions numbers under Division 2 of Part 3 for the
relevant eligible financial year that are attributable to covered emissions
from the operation of a facility; and
(d) any of the following conditions is
satisfied:
(i) a report under section 19,
22G or 22X of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007 was
not required in relation to the facility for the previous eligible financial
year;
(ii) if one or more persons
had a provisional emissions number for the previous eligible financial year,
under a particular provision of Division 2 of Part 3 in so far as
that provision applies to the facility—the total of those numbers is less than
35,000;
(iii) if one or more persons
are reasonably expected to have a provisional emissions number for the relevant
eligible financial year, under a particular provision of Division 2 of
Part 3 in so far as that provision applies to the facility—the total of
those numbers is reasonably expected to be less than 35,000.
For the purposes of paragraph (d), assume that the
financial year beginning on 1 July 2011 was an eligible financial year.
Adjustment
(2) For the purposes of determining an
interim emissions number of the person for the relevant eligible financial year,
disregard a provisional emissions number that is, or is likely to be,
attributable to covered emissions from the operation of the facility.
128
Final unit shortfall
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year; and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Unit shortfall
(2) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) exceeds zero:
(a) the person has a unit shortfall
under this section for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the number of units in that
shortfall is equal to the number worked out using that formula.
Note: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
No unit shortfall
(3) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is zero, the person does not have a shortfall
under this section for the eligible financial year.
Final surplus surrender number
(4) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) (disregarding any surrenders of eligible
Australian carbon credit units) is less than zero:
(a) the person has a final surplus
surrender number for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the final surplus surrender number
is equal to the number worked out using that formula (expressed as a positive).
Formula
(5) The formula is as follows:

where:
emissions number means the person’s emissions
number for the eligible financial year.
number of units surrendered after 15 June and
before 1 February means the number of eligible emissions units
that the person surrendered, in relation to the eligible financial year, during
the period:
(a) beginning immediately after the
end of 15 June in the eligible financial year; and
(b) ending at the end of 1 February
next following the eligible financial year.
surplus and estimation error adjustment number
means the surplus and estimation error adjustment number of the person for the eligible
financial year worked out under section 131.
total interim emissions numbers means the
total of the interim emissions numbers of the person for the eligible financial
year.
(6) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is not a whole number, the number is to be
rounded to the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5 being rounded
up). For this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
Eligible Australian carbon credit units—surrender limit
(7) If:
(a) during the period:
(i) beginning immediately
after the end of 15 June in the eligible financial year; and
(ii) ending at the end of 1 February
next following the eligible financial year;
the person surrendered, in
relation to the eligible financial year, eligible Australian carbon credit
units; and
(b) the number of eligible Australian
carbon credit units exceeds the number worked out using the formula in subsection (8);
then:
(c) this Division has effect as if the
person had not surrendered, during that period, the number of eligible
Australian carbon credit units that equals the excess; and
(d) this Division has effect as if the
person had, during the period:
(i) beginning immediately
after the end of 15 June in the next eligible financial year; and
(ii) ending at the end of 1 February
next following the next eligible financial year;
surrendered, in relation to the
next eligible financial year, the number of eligible Australian carbon credit
units that equals the excess.
(8) The formula is as follows:

where:
5% surrender limit means 5% of the emissions
number of the person for the eligible financial year.
number of ACCUs surrendered by 15 June
means the number of eligible Australian carbon credit units that:
(a) were surrendered by the person, in
relation to the eligible financial year, before the end of 15 June in the eligible
financial year; and
(b) did not exceed 5% of the total of
the interim emissions numbers of the person for the eligible financial year.
(9) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (8) is not a whole number, the number is to be
rounded to the nearest whole number (with a number ending in .5 being rounded
up). For this purpose, zero is taken to be a whole number.
129
Estimation error unit shortfall
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year; and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Unit shortfall
(2) If the person has one or more estimation
error numbers for the eligible financial year:
(a) the person has a unit shortfall
under this section for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the number of units in that
shortfall is equal to the total of those estimation error numbers.
Note: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
Estimation error number
(3) If:
(a) the person gave the Regulator an
estimate under subsection 126(4) for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (4) of this section exceeds zero;
that number is an estimation error number of
the person for the eligible financial year.
(4) The formula is as follows:

where:
provisional emissions number means the
provisional emissions number to which the estimate relates.
130
Remission of unit shortfall charge imposed on estimation error unit shortfall
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person has a
unit shortfall under section 129 for an eligible financial year.
Power to remit
(2) The Regulator may remit the whole or a
part of an amount of unit shortfall charge imposed on the unit shortfall if the
Regulator is satisfied that there are circumstances that make it fair and
reasonable to remit some or all of the amount.
(3) In deciding whether to remit the whole or
a part of an amount of unit shortfall charge, the Regulator must have regard to
the following matters:
(a) whether the person took reasonable
steps to avoid having the unit shortfall;
(b) the extent to which the unit
shortfall is attributable to an increase in emissions that could not reasonably
have been foreseen by the person when the person gave the Regulator an estimate
under subsection 126(4);
(c) whether the person has had a unit
shortfall under section 129 for a previous eligible financial year;
(d) such other matters (if any) as the
Regulator considers relevant.
(4) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (2):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the person; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
Refusal
(5) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
remit the whole or a part of an amount of unit shortfall charge; and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application made by the person;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the person.
131
Surplus and estimation error adjustment number
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year (the relevant eligible financial year);
and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Surplus and estimation error adjustment number
(2) If:
(a) the person has a provisional
surplus surrender number for the relevant eligible financial year worked out
under section 125; and
(b) the person has one or more estimation
error numbers for the relevant eligible financial year worked out under section 129;
then:
(c) if the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (3) exceeds zero—that number is the surplus and
estimation error adjustment number of the person for the eligible financial
year; and
(d) if the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (3) is zero—the person’s surplus and estimation
error adjustment number for the relevant eligible financial year is zero; and
(e) if the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (3) is less than zero—the person’s surplus and
estimation error adjustment number for the relevant eligible financial year is
equal to that number (expressed as a positive).
(3) The formula is as follows:

where:
provisional surplus surrender number means
the provisional surplus surrender number of the person for the relevant
eligible financial year worked out under section 125.
total estimation error numbers means the
total of the estimation error numbers of the person for the relevant eligible
financial year worked out under section 129.
(4) If:
(a) the person has one or more error
estimation numbers for the relevant eligible financial year worked out under
section 129; and
(b) the person does not have a
provisional surplus surrender number for the relevant eligible financial year
worked out under section 125;
the person’s surplus and estimation error adjustment
number for the relevant eligible financial year is equal to the total of the
estimation error numbers.
(5) If:
(a) the person has a provisional
surplus surrender number for the relevant eligible financial year worked out
under section 125; and
(b) the person does not have any error
estimation numbers for the relevant eligible financial year worked out under
section 129;
the person’s surplus and estimation error adjustment
number for the relevant eligible financial year is equal to the provisional
surplus surrender number.
(6) If:
(a) the person does not have a
provisional surplus surrender number for the relevant eligible financial year
worked out under section 125; and
(b) the person does not have any
estimation error numbers for the relevant eligible financial year worked out under
section 129;
the person’s surplus and estimation error adjustment
number for the relevant eligible financial year is zero.
132
Refund—surplus surrender
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year; and
(b) the eligible financial year is a
fixed charge year.
Refund
(2) If the person has a final surplus
surrender number for that fixed charge year worked out under section 128,
there is payable by the Commonwealth to the person the amount worked out using
the following formula:

where:
fixed charge amount means the per unit charge
applicable under subsection 100(1) for the issue of a carbon unit with a
vintage year of that fixed charge year.
(3) The Consolidated Revenue Fund is
appropriated for the purposes of making payments under subsection (2).
Subdivision B—Flexible charge years
133
Unit shortfall
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year (the relevant eligible financial year);
and
(b) the relevant eligible financial
year is a flexible charge year.
Unit shortfall
(2) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) exceeds zero:
(a) the person has a unit shortfall
under this section for the relevant eligible financial year; and
(b) the number of units in that
shortfall is equal to the number worked out using that formula.
Note: Unit shortfall charge is imposed by whichever
of the following is applicable:
(a) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Excise)
Act 2011;
(b) Part 3 of the Clean Energy (Charges—Customs)
Act 2011;
(c) the Clean Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General)
Act 2011.
No unit shortfall
(3) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is zero, the person does not have a unit
shortfall under this section for the relevant eligible financial year.
Surplus surrender number
(4) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (5) is less than zero:
(a) the person has a surplus surrender
number for the relevant eligible financial year; and
(b) the surplus surrender number is
equal to the number worked out using that formula (expressed as a positive).
Formula
(5) The formula is as follows:

where:
emissions number means the person’s emissions
number for the relevant eligible financial year.
number of units surrendered before the end of 1 February
means the number of eligible emissions units the person surrendered, in
relation to the relevant eligible financial year, before the end of 1 February
next following the relevant eligible financial year.
surplus surrender number means the surplus
surrender number (if any) of the person for the previous eligible financial
year, so long as the previous eligible financial year is a flexible charge
year.
Borrowing limit
(6) If:
(a) before the end of 1 February
next following the relevant eligible financial year, the person surrendered, in
relation to the relevant eligible financial year, carbon units (the borrowed
units) that have a vintage year that next follows the relevant eligible
financial year; and
(b) the number of borrowed units
exceeds 5% of the person’s emissions number for the relevant eligible financial
year;
this section has effect as if:
(c) the person had not, before the end
of that 1 February, surrendered, in relation to the relevant eligible
financial year, the number of borrowed units that equals the excess; and
(d) the person had, before the end of
1 February next following the next eligible financial year, surrendered,
in relation to the next eligible financial year, the number of borrowed units
that equals the excess.
Eligible international emissions units—surrender limit
(7) If:
(a) the relevant eligible financial
year is:
(i) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2015; or
(ii) any of the next 4
eligible financial years; and
(b) before the end of 1 February
next following the relevant eligible financial year, the person surrendered, in
relation to the relevant eligible financial year, eligible international
emissions units; and
(c) the number of eligible
international emissions units exceeds 50% of the emissions number of the person
for the relevant eligible financial year;
this section has effect as if:
(d) the person had not, before the end
of that 1 February, surrendered, in relation to the relevant eligible
financial year, the number of eligible international emissions units that
equals the excess; and
(e) the person had, before the end of
1 February next following the next eligible financial year, surrendered,
in relation to the next eligible financial year, the number of eligible
international emissions units that equals the excess.
Reduction of surplus surrender number
(8) If:
(a) apart from this subsection, the
person has a surplus surrender number for the previous eligible financial year;
and
(b) the previous eligible financial year
is a flexible charge year;
and the following conditions are satisfied in relation to
one or more eligible international emissions units:
(c) before the end of 1 February
next following the previous eligible financial year, the person surrendered, in
relation to the previous eligible financial year, those units;
(d) assuming that:
(i) those units had not
been surrendered in relation to the previous eligible financial year; and
(ii) the person had, on 1 February
next following the relevant eligible financial year, purported to surrender, in
relation to the relevant eligible financial year, those units;
the purported surrender of those
units would have breached regulations made for the purposes of subsection
123(1);
then:
(e) if the person would not have had a
surplus surrender number for the previous eligible financial year if those
units had not been surrendered in relation to the previous eligible financial
year—subsection (5) has effect as if the person did not have a surplus surrender
number for the previous eligible financial year; or
(f) if the person’s surplus surrender
number for the previous eligible financial year would have been reduced if
those units had not been surrendered in relation to the previous eligible
financial year—subsection (5) has effect as if the person’s surplus
surrender number for the previous eligible financial year were reduced
accordingly.
Division 4—Unit shortfall charge
134
When unit shortfall charge becomes due and payable
(1) If a person has a unit shortfall under
section 125 for a fixed charge year, unit shortfall charge imposed on the
unit shortfall is due and payable at the end of the period of 5 business days
after 15 June in the fixed charge year.
Note: For unit shortfall charge, see
section 5.
(2) If a person has a unit shortfall under
section 128 or 129 for a fixed charge year, unit shortfall charge imposed
on the unit shortfall is due and payable at the end of the period of 5 business
days after 1 February next following the fixed charge year.
Note: For unit shortfall charge, see
section 5.
(3) If a person has a unit shortfall under
section 133 for a flexible charge year, unit shortfall charge imposed on
the unit shortfall is due and payable at the end of the period of 5 business
days after 1 February next following the flexible charge year.
Note: For unit shortfall charge, see
section 5.
134A
Remission of unit shortfall charge—voluntary disclosure by liable entity of
incorrect emissions number
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a report relating to an eligible
financial year was given under section 22A of the National Greenhouse
and Energy Reporting Act 2007 by a person who was a liable entity for the
eligible financial year; and
(b) the number specified in the report
as the person’s emissions number for the eligible financial year:
(i) is incorrect; and
(ii) is less than the
person’s emissions number for the eligible financial year; and
(c) after 1 February next
following the eligible financial year, the person voluntarily discloses to the
Regulator that the number specified in the report is incorrect; and
(d) the disclosure was made before any
relevant investigative action was taken; and
(e) the person has a unit shortfall
for the eligible financial year; and
(f) the person applies to the
Regulator for the remission of a part of the amount of the unit shortfall
charge imposed on the unit shortfall.
Power to remit
(2) The Regulator may remit a part of the
amount of the unit shortfall charge if the Regulator is satisfied that it would
be fair and reasonable to remit that part, having regard to:
(a) the circumstances that resulted in
the incorrect number being specified in the report; and
(b) whether the person took reasonable
precautions, and exercised due diligence, to avoid the incorrect number being
specified in the report; and
(c) such other matters (if any) as the
Regulator considers relevant.
Limit on amount remitted
(3) The Regulator must not remit a part of
the amount of the unit shortfall charge if the remainder of the amount would be
less than the amount worked out using the formula:

where:
applicable amount for the financial year
means:
(a) if the eligible financial year is
a fixed charge year—an amount equal to the per unit charge applicable under
subsection 100(1) for the issue of a carbon unit with a vintage year of that
fixed charge year; or
(b) if the eligible financial year is
a flexible charge year—an amount equal to the benchmark average auction charge
for the previous financial year.
Refusal
(4) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
remit a part of the unit shortfall charge, the Regulator must give written
notice of the decision to the person.
Relevant investigative action
(5) For the purposes of this section, if the
Regulator gives the person a notice under Subdivision G of Division 4 of
Part 6 of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007, the
giving of the notice is a relevant investigative action.
(6) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) an inspector enters premises under
Part 15; and
(b) the inspector does so for the
purpose of:
(i) determining whether
the person complied with this Act or the associated provisions; or
(ii) substantiating
information provided by the person under this Act or the associated provisions;
the entry is a relevant investigative action.
(7) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the Regulator gives the person a
notice under section 221; and
(b) the Regulator does so because the
Regulator believes on reasonable grounds that the person has information or a
document that is relevant to the operation of this Act or the associated
provisions in relation to the person;
the giving of the notice is a relevant investigative
action.
(8) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) the Regulator gives the person a
notice under section 71 of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting
Act 2007; and
(b) the Regulator does so because the
Regulator has reason to believe that the person has information relating to
whether the person has complied with that Act;
the giving of the notice is a relevant investigative
action.
(9) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) an authorised officer (within the
meaning of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007) enters
premises under Division 4 of Part 6 of that Act; and
(b) the authorised officer does so for
the purpose of determining whether that Act has been complied with by the
person;
the entry is a relevant investigative action.
135
Late payment penalty
Penalty
(1) If an amount of unit shortfall charge
payable by a person remains unpaid after the time when it became due for
payment, the person is liable to pay, by way of penalty, an amount calculated
at the rate of:
(a) 20% per annum; or
(b) if a lower rate per annum is
specified in the regulations—that lower rate per annum;
on the amount unpaid, computed from that time.
Power to remit
(2) The Regulator may remit the whole or a
part of an amount payable under subsection (1) if:
(a) the Regulator is satisfied that
the person did not contribute to the delay in payment and has taken reasonable
steps to mitigate the causes of the delay; or
(b) the Regulator is satisfied:
(i) that the person
contributed to the delay but has taken reasonable steps to mitigate the causes
of the delay; and
(ii) having regard to the
nature of the reasons that caused the delay, that it would be fair and
reasonable to remit some or all of the amount; or
(c) a part of the amount of the
relevant unit shortfall charge has been remitted under section 134A; or
(d) the Regulator is satisfied that
there are special circumstances that make it reasonable to remit some or all of
the amount.
(3) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (2):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by a person; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
Refusal
(4) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
remit the whole or a part of an amount payable under subsection (1); and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the applicant.
136
Recovery of unit shortfall charge and late payment penalty
Scope
(1) This section applies to the following
amounts:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge;
(b) an amount payable under section 135.
Recovery
(2) The amount:
(a) is a debt due to the Commonwealth;
and
(b) may be recovered by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, by action in a court of competent jurisdiction.
137
Set‑off
(1) If:
(a) either of the following amounts
(the first amount) is payable by a person:
(i) an amount of unit
shortfall charge;
(ii) an amount payable
under section 135; and
(b) the following conditions are
satisfied in relation to another amount (the second amount):
(i) the amount is payable
by the Commonwealth to the person;
(ii) the amount is of a
kind specified in the regulations;
the Regulator may, on behalf of the Commonwealth, set off
the whole or a part of the first amount against the whole or a part of the
second amount.
(2) If:
(a) either of the following amounts
(the first amount) is payable by a person:
(i) an amount of unit
shortfall charge;
(ii) an amount payable
under section 135; and
(b) an amount (the second amount)
is payable by the Commonwealth to the person under section 132;
the Regulator may, on behalf of the Commonwealth, set off
the whole or a part of the first amount against the whole or a part of the
second amount.
138
Liability transfer certificate—statutory guarantee
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a company was the holder of a
liability transfer certificate throughout the whole or a part of an eligible
financial year; and
(b) a person consented under
subsection 81(3) or 85(4) to the making of the application for the certificate.
Guarantee
(2) The person is taken to have guaranteed
the payment by the company of the following amounts:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
payable by the company in relation to a unit shortfall for the eligible
financial year;
(b) an amount payable under section 135
because of the late payment of an amount covered by paragraph (a).
140
Refund of overpayments
If either of the following amounts has
been overpaid by a person, the amount overpaid must be refunded by the
Commonwealth:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge;
(b) an amount payable under section 135.
Note: For appropriation, see section 28 of the Financial
Management and Accountability Act 1997.
Division 5—Assessment of unit shortfall and unit shortfall charge
141
Assessment of unit shortfall and unit shortfall charge
Scope
(1) This section applies if the Regulator has
reasonable grounds to believe that:
(a) a person is a liable entity for an
eligible financial year; and
(b) the person has a unit shortfall
for the eligible financial year.
Assessment
(2) The Regulator may:
(a) make an assessment of:
(i) the unit shortfall; or
(ii) the unit shortfall
charge payable on the unit shortfall; and
(b) give written notice of the
assessment to the person.
Amendment of assessments
(3) The Regulator may amend an assessment
under this section at any time.
(4) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (3):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the person to whom the assessment relates; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
(5) If the Regulator amends an assessment,
the Regulator must give written notice of the amendment to the person to whom
the assessment relates.
(6) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
amend an assessment; and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application by the person to whom the assessment relates;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the person.
(7) For the purposes of this Act, an amended
assessment is taken to be an assessment under this section.
Reliance on report
(8) In making an assessment under this
section, the Regulator may rely on a report given under the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Advisory character of assessment
(9) A notice of assessment under this section
is an instrument of an advisory character.
Division 6—Extension of surrender deadline
142
Extension of surrender deadline
Scope
(1) This section applies if the Regulator is
satisfied that:
(a) 2 or more persons were unable to
surrender eligible emissions units during the whole or a part of either of the
following days:
(i) 15 June in a
fixed charge year;
(ii) 1 February next
following an eligible financial year; and
(b) the inability to surrender the
units was attributable to:
(i) a fault or malfunction
relating to a computer system under the control of the Regulator; or
(ii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a facility (within the meaning of the Telecommunications Act
1997); or
(iii) a fault or malfunction
relating to a carriage service (within the meaning of that Act) provided to the
public; and
(c) it would be reasonable to extend
the deadline for the surrender of eligible emissions units beyond the end of
that 15 June or 1 February, as the case may be.
Extension of surrender deadline
(2) If subparagraph (1)(a)(i) applies, the
Regulator may, by legislative instrument, determine that this Act has effect as
if a reference in each of the following provisions to the end of that 15 June
were a reference to such later time as is specified in the determination:
(a) section 125;
(b) section 126;
(c) section 128;
(d) subsection 134(1).
(3) If subparagraph (1)(a)(ii) applies,
the Regulator may, by legislative instrument, determine that this Act has
effect as if a reference in each of the following provisions to the end of that
1 February were a reference to such later time as is specified in the
determination:
(a) paragraph 115(1)(c);
(b) section 128;
(c) section 133;
(d) subsection 134(2);
(e) subsection 134(3);
(f) section 200.
(4) If the Regulator makes a determination
under this section, the Regulator must publish a copy of the determination on
its website.
Part 7—Jobs and Competitiveness Program
Division 1—Introduction
143
Aim and objects
(1) The aim of this Part is to recognise
issues relating to the impact of this Act and the associated provisions on the
international competitiveness of activities that are:
(a) identified as emissions‑intensive
trade‑exposed activities; and
(b) carried on in Australia.
(2) The objects of this Part are:
(a) to enable the identification of
activities as emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities; and
(b) to reduce the incentives for such
an activity to be located in, or relocated to, foreign countries as a result of
different climate change policies applying in Australia compared to foreign
countries; and
(c) to provide transitional assistance
in respect of such an activity if carried on in Australia; and
(d) to provide such assistance in a
manner that is economically and environmentally efficient;
until such assistance is no longer warranted, having
regard to:
(e) whether measures to reduce
emissions of carbon dioxide and other greenhouse gases that have an impact that
is comparable to the impact of Australian emissions reduction measures
(including the impact of associated assistance) have been implemented in
respect of markets:
(i) that are outside
Australia; and
(ii) that are for goods
produced as a result of such an activity (whether carried on in or outside
Australia); and
(iii) in which persons who
carry on such an activity in Australia compete; and
(f) whether foreign countries that
are responsible for the substantial majority of the world’s emissions of carbon
dioxide and other greenhouse gases have implemented measures to reduce those
emissions that have an impact that is comparable to the impact of Australian
emissions reduction measures (including the impact of associated assistance); and
(g) any other relevant matters.
144
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The regulations may
formulate a program, to be known as the Jobs and Competitiveness Program, for
the issue of free carbon units in respect of activities that:
(a) under the
program, are taken to be emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities; and
(b) are, or are
to be, carried on in Australia during a financial year specified in the
program.
• The Jobs and
Competitiveness Program may:
(a) require a
recipient of free carbon units to relinquish units; and
(b) impose
reporting or record‑keeping requirements on a recipient of free carbon units.
• The Productivity Commission
will conduct periodic reviews of:
(a) the
operation of assistance arrangements under the Jobs and Competitiveness
Program; and
(b) the impact of
this Act and the associated provisions on emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
industries; and
(c) the economic
and environmental efficiency of assistance arrangements under the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
Division 2—Formulation of the Jobs and Competitiveness Program
145 Jobs
and Competitiveness Program
(1) The regulations may formulate a program
(to be known as the Jobs and Competitiveness Program) for the
issue of free carbon units in respect of activities that:
(a) under the program, are taken to be
emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities; and
(b) are, or are to be, carried on in
Australia during an eligible financial year specified in the program.
(2) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program must
provide that free carbon units must not be issued to a person in accordance
with the program unless the person:
(a) meets such requirements as are
specified in the program; and
(b) has a Registry account.
(3) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program must
not provide that the extraction of coal is an activity that, under the program,
is taken to be an emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activity.
(4) The Minister must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that regulations are made for the purposes of subsection (1)
before 1 March 2012.
(5) In making a recommendation to the
Governor‑General about regulations that amend regulations made for the purposes
of subsection (1), the Minister must have regard to the following matters:
(a) the aim and objects of this Part;
(b) the most recent report given to
the Productivity Minister by the Productivity Commission in relation to an
inquiry mentioned in section 155;
(c) the principle that changes that
will have a negative effect on recipients of assistance under the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program should not take effect before the later of the
following:
(i) 1 July 2017;
(ii) the end of the 3‑year
period that begins when the reduction is announced;
(d) such other matters (if any) as the
Minister considers relevant.
146
Relinquishment requirement
(1) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
provide that, if:
(a) a number of free carbon units have
been issued to a person in accordance with the program; and
(b) any of the following subparagraphs
applies:
(i) a specified event
happens;
(ii) a specified
circumstance comes into existence;
(iii) the Regulator is
satisfied about a specified matter;
the person is required to relinquish a number of carbon
units ascertained in accordance with the program.
Note: An administrative penalty is payable under
section 212 for non‑compliance with a relinquishment requirement under the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program.
(2) The number of carbon units required to be
relinquished by the person must not exceed the number of units mentioned in paragraph (1)(a).
(3) Subsection (1) does not, by implication,
limit subsection 145(1).
147
Reporting requirement
Scope
(1) This section applies to a person if free
carbon units have been issued to the person in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
Requirement
(2) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
make provision for and in relation to requiring the person to give one or more
written reports to the Regulator.
(3) Subsection (2) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 145(1).
148
Record‑keeping requirement
Scope
(1) This section applies to a person if free
carbon units have been issued to the person in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
Requirement
(2) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
make provision for and in relation to requiring the person to:
(a) make records of information
specified in the program; and
(b) retain such a record, or a copy,
for 5 years after the record was made.
(3) Subsection (2) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 145(1).
149
Other matters
(1) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
make provision for and in relation to the following matters:
(a) applications for free carbon units;
(b) the approval by the Regulator of a
form for such an application;
(c) information that must accompany
such an application;
(d) documents that must accompany such
an application;
(e) the method of calculating the
number of free carbon units to be issued to a person in accordance with the
program.
(2) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
provide that an application for free carbon units must be accompanied by a
prescribed report.
(3) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in applications
for free carbon units.
(4) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
provide for the Regulator to give information to prospective applicants to
assist them in preparing applications for free carbon units.
(5) The information under subsection (4)
may include information in relation to the ways in which volumes of production
may be measured, by prospective applicants, for the purposes of preparing
applications for free carbon units.
(6) Subsection (5) does not limit subsection (4).
(7) This section does not, by implication,
limit subsection 145(1).
150
Ancillary or incidental provisions
(1) The Jobs and Competitiveness Program may
contain ancillary or incidental provisions.
(2) Subsection (1) does not, by
implication, limit subsection 145(1).
Division 3—Compliance with reporting and record‑keeping requirements
under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program
151
Compliance with reporting and record‑keeping requirements
Reporting requirements
(1) If a person is subject to a requirement
under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program to give a report to the Regulator,
the person must comply with that requirement.
Record‑keeping requirements
(2) If a person is subject to a requirement
under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program to:
(a) make a record of information; or
(b) retain such a record or a copy;
the person must comply with that requirement.
Ancillary contraventions
(3) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (1) or (2); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (1) or (2); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (1)
or (2); or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (1) or (2).
Civil penalty provisions
(4) Subsections (1), (2) and (3) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Division 4—Special information‑gathering powers
152
Minister may obtain information
Scope
(1) This section applies to a constitutional
corporation if:
(a) a person (who may be the
corporation) has indicated to the Commonwealth that the person believes that an
activity may be, or should be, eligible for emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
assistance; and
(b) that activity is not an activity
that, under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program, is taken to be an emissions‑intensive
trade‑exposed activity; and
(c) the Minister believes on
reasonable grounds that the corporation has information that:
(i) relates to the
activity; and
(ii) is likely to assist
the Commonwealth to formulate or vary the policy embodied in the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
Request for information and report
(2) The Minister may, by written notice given
to the corporation:
(a) request the corporation to give to
the Minister, within the period and in the manner and form specified in the
notice, any such information; and
(b) request that the information be
accompanied by a report specified in the notice.
(3) A period specified under subsection (2)
must not be shorter than 60 days after the notice is given.
Request for information
(4) The Minister may, by written notice given
to the corporation, request the corporation to give to the Minister, within the
period and in the manner and form specified in the notice, any such information.
(5) A period specified under subsection (4)
must not be shorter than 30 days after the notice is given.
153 No
assistance for 2 eligible financial years if corporation refuses or fails to
comply with request for information
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a constitutional corporation is
given a request under subsection 152(2) or (4) at a particular time; and
(b) the corporation is capable of
complying with the request; and
(c) the corporation refuses or fails
to comply with the request; and
(d) the Minister notifies the Regulator,
in writing, that the Minister considers that the non‑compliance is significant.
No assistance for 2 eligible financial years
(2) No free carbon units that have a vintage
year of:
(a) the first eligible financial year
that begins after that time; or
(b) the eligible financial year that
next follows the eligible financial year mentioned in paragraph (a);
are to be issued to the corporation in accordance with the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program.
154
Disclosure of information to the Regulator
Scope
(1) This section applies to information
obtained under section 152.
Disclosure
(2) The Minister may disclose the information
to the Regulator for the purposes of, or in connection with, the performance of
the functions, or the exercise of the powers, of the Regulator.
Other powers of disclosure not limited
(3) This section does not, by implication,
limit the Minister’s powers to disclose the information to a person other than
the Regulator.
Division 5—Productivity Commission inquiries
155
Productivity Commission inquiries
Review period
(1) For the purposes of this section, each of
the following is a review period:
(a) the 12‑month period ending at the
end of 30 June 2015;
(b) the period beginning at the start
of 1 July 2015 and ending at the end of 31 December 2016;
(c) the period beginning at the start
of 1 January 2017 and ending at the end of 31 December 2018;
(d) the 5‑year period beginning at the
start of 1 January 2019;
(e) each succeeding 5‑year period.
Inquiry by Productivity Commission
(2) During each review period, the
Productivity Minister must, under paragraph 6(1)(a) of the Productivity
Commission Act 1998, refer the following matters to the Productivity
Commission for inquiry:
(a) the matter of the operation of
assistance arrangements under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program;
(b) the matter of the impact of this
Act and the associated provisions on emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
industries;
(c) the matter of the economic and
environmental efficiency of assistance arrangements under the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
(3) In referring the matters to the
Productivity Commission for inquiry, the Productivity Minister must, under
paragraph 11(1)(b) of the Productivity Commission Act 1998, specify the
review period in which the referral occurs as the period within which the
Productivity Commission must submit its report on the inquiry to the
Productivity Minister.
Note: Under section 12 of the Productivity
Commission Act 1998, the Productivity Minister must cause a copy of the
Productivity Commission’s report to be tabled in each House of Parliament.
Matters relating to industry, industry development and
productivity
(4) For the purposes of paragraph 6(1)(a) of
the Productivity Commission Act 1998, each matter mentioned in subsection (2)
of this section is taken to be a matter relating to industry, industry
development and productivity.
156
Matters to which the Productivity Commission must have regard
Scope
(1) This section applies to an inquiry mentioned
in section 155.
Matters
(2) In holding the inquiry, and preparing its
report on the inquiry, the Productivity Commission must have regard to the
following matters:
(a) whether assistance under the Jobs
and Competitiveness Program is still warranted having regard to the matters in
paragraphs 143(2)(e) and (f);
(b) the progress made by persons
carrying on emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities towards achieving best
practice for energy and emissions efficiency in relation to the industrial
sector to which those activities relate;
(c) whether there are additional
activities that should be identified as emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
activities for the purposes of the Jobs and Competitiveness Program;
(d) the extent to which foreign
countries have implemented emissions reduction measures that have an impact
that is comparable to the impact of Australian emissions reduction measures
(including the impact of associated assistance);
(e) whether it is:
(i) feasible; and
(ii) consistent with the aim
and objects of this Part;
to change the method of issuing
free carbon units in accordance with the Jobs and Competitiveness Program to a
method based on an assessment of the anticipated increase in international
prices of individual emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed industry products that
would result from foreign countries implementing emissions reduction measures
that have an impact that is comparable to the impact of Australian emissions
reduction measures (including the impact of associated assistance);
(f) whether windfall gains are being
conferred on persons carrying out emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities
as a result of the Jobs and Competitiveness Program;
(g) to the extent to which there is no
cap on free carbon units issued in accordance with the Jobs and Competitiveness
Program for particular facilities, the effect of those facilities not being
subject to such a cap;
(h) the growth in the emissions‑intensive
trade‑exposed sector, and implications of that growth for the number of free
carbon units issued within the limits of the carbon pollution cap;
(i) the appropriateness of any supplementary
allocations of free carbon units issued in accordance with the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program in respect of liquefied natural gas production;
(j) the impact of this Act and the
associated provisions on the competitiveness of emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
industries;
(k) whether the assistance under the
Jobs and Competitiveness Program for a specific industry should be changed;
(l) whether the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program is supporting Australia’s medium‑term and long‑term
emissions reduction objectives;
(m) the extent to which the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program gives effect to:
(i) the aim and objects of
this Part; and
(ii) the objects of this
Act;
(n) any other matters specified in a legislative
instrument made by the Productivity Minister;
(o) such other matters (if any) as the
Productivity Commission considers relevant.
(3) In having regard to the matters in paragraphs (2)(d)
and (k), the Productivity Commission must consider the following:
(a) whether less than 70% of the relevant
competitors of each emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed industry are located in
foreign countries where the impact on those competitors of emissions reduction
measures (including the impact of associated assistance) is comparable to the
impact on the industry of Australian emissions reduction measures (including
the impact of associated assistance);
(b) whether, having regard to the
matter in paragraph (a), the application of the rate of assistance for a
specific industry should pause when assistance rates reach:
(i) 90% for highly
emissions‑intensive industries; and
(ii) 60% for moderately
emissions‑intensive industries.
(4) In having regard to the matter in paragraph (2)(e),
the Productivity Commission must consider whether the relevant method is the
most effective and efficient means of achieving the aim and objects of this
Part.
(5) In having regard to the matters in paragraphs (2)(f)
and (j), the Productivity Commission must consider the following:
(a) an analysis of the carbon cost
passed on (to and by emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed industries);
(b) the reduction in emissions of
greenhouse gases resulting from emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed activities;
(c) the effect of a declining rate of
assistance under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program on emissions‑intensive
trade‑exposed activities.
(6) Subsection (2) of this section has
effect in addition to section 8 of the Productivity Commission Act 1998.
(7) In conducting the inquiry, the
Productivity Commission must consult the Climate Change Authority about the
following matters:
(a) the matter mentioned in paragraph (2)(l);
(b) the matter mentioned in paragraph (2)(m).
157
Report of inquiry
Scope
(1) This section applies to the report of an
inquiry mentioned in section 155.
Recommendations
(2) Recommendations in the report may include
recommendations regarding the rates of assistance under the Jobs and Competitiveness
Program over time that are specified in the regulations.
(3) When making recommendations in accordance
with subsection (2), the Productivity Commission must have regard to the
principle that changes that will have a negative effect on recipients of
assistance under the Jobs and Competitiveness Program should not take effect
before the later of the following:
(a) 1 July 2017;
(b) the end of the 3‑year period that
began when the change was announced.
Government response to recommendations
(4) If the report sets out one or more
recommendations to the Commonwealth Government:
(a) as soon as practicable after
receiving the report, the Productivity Minister must cause to be prepared a
statement setting out the Commonwealth Government’s response to each of the
recommendations; and
(b) the Productivity Minister must
cause copies of the statement to be tabled in each House of the Parliament
before the later of the following:
(i) the end of the period
of 25 sitting days of that House after the day on which the Productivity
Minister receives the report;
(ii) the end of the 6‑month
period beginning on the day on which the Productivity Minister receives the
report.
(5) The Commonwealth Government’s response to
the recommendations may have regard to the views of the following:
(a) the Climate Change Authority;
(b) the Regulator;
(c) the Productivity Commission;
(d) such other persons as the Productivity
Minister considers relevant.
Publication of report
(6) As soon as practicable after the Productivity
Minister tables the report in each House of the Parliament, the Productivity
Commission must publish the report on the Productivity Commission’s website.
Note: The Productivity Minister must cause a copy of
the report to be tabled in each House of Parliament—see section 12 of the Productivity
Commission Act 1998.
158 No
limit on Productivity Minister’s powers
This Division does not limit the
Productivity Minister’s powers under paragraph 6(1)(a) of the Productivity
Commission Act 1998.
Part 8—Coal‑fired electricity generation
Division 1—Introduction
159
Object
The object of this Part is to maintain
energy security with the introduction of this Act and the associated
provisions. It does so by providing transitional assistance in respect of
highly emissions‑intensive generation assets so as to:
(a) help generators that face sizeable
losses in the value of their assets; and
(b) support investor confidence, and
underpin the investment in generation assets that is required to ensure that Australia’s
future energy security needs are met.
160
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• Free carbon units may be
issued in respect of generation complexes that meet certain eligibility
requirements.
• Free units will be issued
during:
(a) the
financial year beginning on 1 July 2013; and
(b) each of the
next 3 financial years.
• The number of free units is
capped.
• Free units will not be
issued if a generation complex does not pass the power system reliability test
for a financial year.
• Free units will not be
issued in respect of a generation complex unless a Clean Energy Investment Plan
is given to the Resources and Energy Minister.
• If a closure contract is in
force in relation to a generation complex:
(a) there will
be restrictions on the free units that may be issued in respect of the
generation complex; and
(b) the
generation complex does not have to pass the power system reliability test; and
(c) the
requirement to give a Clean Energy Investment Plan does not apply in relation
to the generation complex.
Division 2—Issue of free carbon units in respect of generation complexes
161
Issue of free carbon units in respect of generation complexes
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation
complex if a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance is
in force in respect of the generation complex.
Issue of free units
(2) On each of the following days:
(a) 1 September in the eligible
financial year beginning on 1 July 2013;
(b) 1 September in the eligible
financial year beginning on 1 July 2015;
(c) 1 September in the eligible
financial year beginning on 1 July 2016;
the Regulator must issue a number of free carbon units
equal to the number worked out using the following formula:

where:
annual assistance factor specified in the certificate
means the number specified in the certificate as the annual assistance factor
in respect of the generation complex.
Note: The annual assistance factor is worked out
under section 167.
total annual assistance factors for that eligible
financial year means the total of the numbers specified as annual
assistance factors in certificates of eligibility for coal‑fired generation
assistance issued, or purportedly issued, by the Regulator before 1 September
in that eligible financial year. For this purpose, disregard a certificate if a
decision to issue the certificate was set aside by a court or tribunal before 1 September
in that eligible financial year.
(3) On 1 September in the eligible
financial year beginning on 1 July 2014, the Regulator must issue a number
of free carbon units equal to the number worked out using the following
formula:

where:
annual assistance factor specified in the certificate
means the number specified in the certificate as the annual assistance factor
in respect of the generation complex.
Note: The annual assistance factor is worked out
under section 167.
total annual assistance factors for that eligible
financial year means the total of the numbers specified as annual
assistance factors in certificates of eligibility for coal‑fired generation
assistance issued, or purportedly issued, by the Regulator before 1 September
in that eligible financial year. For this purpose, disregard a certificate if a
decision to issue the certificate was set aside by a court or tribunal before 1 September
in that eligible financial year.
A means the total number of free carbon units
issued in accordance with this Part before 1 September 2014 in respect of
the generation complex.
B means the Regulator’s reasonable estimate
of the number of free carbon units with a vintage year beginning on 1 July
2013 that were not issued in accordance with this Part in respect of the
generation complex because of:
(a) section 169 (power system
reliability); or
(b) section 177 (Clean Energy
Investment Plan); or
(c) section 181 (closure
contracts).
(4) If the number worked out using the
formula in subsection (2) or (3) is not a multiple of 100:
(a) the number is to be rounded to the
nearest multiple of 100; and
(b) if the number is a multiple of
50—the number is to be rounded up to the nearest multiple of 100.
When units are to be issued
(5) If 1 September in a later eligible
financial year is not a business day, the units are to be issued on the next
business day after that 1 September.
Recipient of units
(6) Free carbon units issued in accordance
with subsection (2) or (3) during an eligible financial year (the relevant
eligible financial year) are to be issued to whichever one of the
following persons is applicable:
(a) if, assuming that:
(i) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been a
facility; and
(ii) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been in
operation; and
(iii) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, greenhouse gases with a carbon
dioxide equivalence of 25,000 tonnes had been emitted from the operation of the
generation complex;
a person would, under section 20,
be a liable entity for the previous eligible financial year wholly or partly as
a result of those emissions of greenhouse gases—the person;
(b) if, assuming that:
(i) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been a
facility; and
(ii) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been in
operation; and
(iii) immediately before the
end of the previous eligible financial year, greenhouse gases with a carbon
dioxide equivalence of 25,000 tonnes had been emitted from the operation of the
generation complex;
a person would, under section 22,
be a liable entity for the previous eligible financial year wholly or partly as
a result of those emissions of greenhouse gases—the person.
(7) However, if, assuming that:
(a) immediately before the end of the
previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been a facility;
and
(b) immediately before the end of the
previous eligible financial year, the generation complex had been in operation;
and
(c) immediately before the end of the
previous eligible financial year, greenhouse gases with a carbon dioxide
equivalence of 25,000 tonnes had been emitted from the operation of the
generation complex;
2 or more participants in a designated joint venture would,
under section 21, be liable entities for the previous eligible financial
year wholly or partly as a result of those emissions of greenhouse gases:
(d) subsection (6) does not apply
to the free carbon units issued in accordance with subsection (2) or (3);
and
(e) those units are to be divided
among, and issued to, those participants in shares that represent their
respective participating percentages.
Note: For participating percentage,
see section 76 or 77.
Vintage year
(8) Free carbon units issued in accordance
with subsection (2) or (3) during an eligible financial year are to have a
vintage year of the eligible financial year.
Registry account
(9) The Regulator must not issue a free
carbon unit to a person in accordance with subsection (2) or (3) unless
the person has a Registry account.
Power system reliability
(10) This section has effect subject to section 169.
Note: Section 169 deals with power system
reliability.
Clean Energy Investment Plan
(11) This section has effect subject to section 177.
Note: Section 177 deals with Clean Energy
Investment Plans.
Closure contract
(12) This section has effect subject to section 181.
Note: Section 181 deals with closure contracts.
Division 3—Certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation
assistance
162
Application for certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance
(1) A person may, within 30 days after the
commencement of this section, apply for the Regulator to issue a certificate of
eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance in respect of a generation
complex.
(2) A person is not entitled to make an
application in respect of a generation complex unless the person owns, controls
or operates the generation complex.
(3) Applications must be mutually exclusive
so far as their coverage of generation units is concerned.
(4) If the Regulator receives 2 or more
applications that, when taken together, breach subsection (3):
(a) the Regulator must not consider
any of those applications; and
(b) the Regulator must, by written
notice given to the applicants, reject those applications and inform the
applicants that:
(i) the applications
breach subsection (3); and
(ii) if one or more fresh
applications are made within 20 days after the notice was given and those fresh
applications do not breach subsection (3), the Regulator will be prepared
to consider those fresh applications.
(5) The 30 day time limit in subsection (1)
does not apply to a fresh application made in response to a notice under subsection (4).
(6) This Act (other than subsection (4))
has effect as if an application rejected under subsection (4) had never
been made.
(7) The Regulator may extend the 30 day time
limit in subsection (1) for the making of a particular application, so
long as:
(a) the extended time limit is not
later than 60 days after the commencement of this section; and
(b) the application, when taken
together with any other application or applications received by the Regulator,
does not breach subsection (3).
163
Form of application
(1) An application must:
(a) be in writing; and
(b) be in the approved combined form;
and
(c) be accompanied by such information
as is specified in the regulations; and
(d) be accompanied by such documents
(if any) as are specified in the regulations; and
(e) be accompanied by a prescribed
report.
(2) For the purposes of this section, the approved
combined form is the form approved, in writing, by the Minister
(whether before or after the commencement of this section):
(a) for applications for payments from
the Energy Security Fund; and
(b) for applications under section 162.
(3) Paragraph (2)(a) does not apply in
relation to a payment under a contract with the Commonwealth that relates to
the closure of a generation complex.
(4) The approved combined form may provide
for verification by statutory declaration of statements in applications.
164
Further information
(1) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to an applicant, require the applicant to give the Regulator, within the
period specified in the notice, further information in connection with the
application.
(2) If the applicant breaches the
requirement, the Regulator may, by written notice given to the applicant:
(a) refuse to consider the
application; or
(b) refuse to take any action, or any
further action, in relation to the application.
165
Issue of certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation complex
if an application under section 162 has been made in respect of the generation
complex.
Issue of certificate
(2) After considering the application, the Regulator
may issue a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance in
respect of the generation complex.
Note: See section 166 (criteria for issuing
certificate).
(3) A certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired
generation assistance must state that a specified number is the annual
assistance factor in respect of the generation complex.
Note: The annual assistance factor is worked out
under section 167.
Timing
(4) The Regulator must take all reasonable
steps to ensure that a decision is made on the application:
(a) if the Regulator requires the
applicant to give further information under subsection 164(1) in relation to
the application—within 90 days after the applicant gave the Regulator the
information; or
(b) otherwise—within whichever is the
later of the following:
(i) 90 days after the
application was made;
(ii) 150 days after the
commencement of this section.
Refusal
(5) If the Regulator decides to refuse to
issue a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance in
respect of the generation complex, the Regulator must give written notice of
the decision to the applicant.
Publication of copy of certificate
(6) As soon as practicable after issuing a
certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance in respect of
the generation complex, the Regulator must publish a copy of the certificate on
its website.
166
Criteria for issuing certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation
assistance
(1) The Regulator must not issue a
certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance in respect of a
generation complex unless the Regulator is satisfied that the generation
complex passes the generation complex assistance eligibility test.
Generation complexes
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
a generation complex passes the generation complex assistance eligibility
test if:
(a) at any time during the period:
(i) beginning on 1 July
2008; and
(ii) ending on 30 June
2010;
the generation complex:
(iii) was in operation; and
(iv) was connected to a grid
with a grid capacity of at least 100 megawatts; and
(b) at least 95% of the electricity
generated by the generation complex during the period:
(i) beginning on 1 July
2008; and
(ii) ending on 30 June
2010;
was attributable to the
combustion of coal; and
(c) the emissions intensity of the
generation complex is greater than 1.0.
Note: For emissions intensity, see
section 168.
Capacity of grid
(3) For the purposes of this section, the capacity
of a grid is to be determined in accordance with regulations made for the
purposes of subsection 31(3) of the Renewable Energy (Electricity) Act 2000.
Rounding
(4) For the purposes of this section,
disregard subsection 168(2) in working out the emissions intensity of a
generation complex.
167
Annual assistance factor
The annual assistance factor to be
specified in a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance
in respect of a generation complex is the Regulator’s reasonable estimate of
the number worked out to 3 decimal places using the following formula:

where:
emissions intensity means the emissions
intensity of the generation complex.
Note: For emissions intensity, see
section 168.
historical energy means:
(a) if the generation complex is a
generation complex that entered service on or before 1 July 2008—the total
number of gigawatt hours of electricity generated by the generation complex
during the period:
(i) beginning on 1 July
2008; and
(ii) ending on 30 June
2010;
as measured at all generator
terminals of the generation complex; or
(b) if the generation complex is a
generation complex that entered service after 1 July 2008—14.016
multiplied by the number of megawatts in the nameplate rating of the generation
complex as at the day the generation complex entered service.
168
Emissions intensity
(1) For the purposes of this Act, the emissions
intensity of a generation complex is the number worked out to 3 decimal
places using the formula:

where:
carbon dioxide equivalence of emissions means
the total number of kilotonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the greenhouse
gases emitted from the combustion of fuel in the generation complex for the
purposes of the generation of electricity during the period:
(a) beginning on 1 July 2008; and
(b) ending on 30 June 2010.
gigawatt hours of electricity generated means
the total number of gigawatt hours of electricity generated by the generation
complex during the period:
(a) beginning on 1 July 2008; and
(b) ending on 30 June 2010;
as measured at all generator terminals of the generation
complex.
(2) However, the emissions intensity
of a generation complex is taken to be 1.3 if the number worked out to 3
decimal places using the formula in subsection (1) is greater than 1.3.
Division 4—Power system reliability
169 No
assistance if generation complex does not pass the power system reliability
test
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation
complex if a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance is
in force in respect of the generation complex.
No assistance if generation complex does not pass the
power system reliability test
(2) No free carbon units with a vintage year
of a particular eligible financial year are to be issued in accordance with
this Part in respect of the generation complex if the generation complex does
not pass the power system reliability test in relation to the eligible
financial year.
Closure contract
(3) This section has effect subject to
section 181A.
170
Power system reliability test
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation
complex if a certificate of eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance is
in force in respect of the generation complex.
Power system reliability test
(2) For the purposes of this Act, the
generation complex passes the power system reliability test in
relation to an eligible financial year (the relevant eligible financial
year) if:
(a) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person who owns, controls or
operates the generation complex is registered as a generator in respect of the
generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory
relating to the regulation of energy markets;
(ii) as at the start of 1 July
2010, the nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation complex was
registered under such a law;
(iii) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, the nameplate rating in megawatts of
the generation complex was not less than the nameplate rating in megawatts of
the generation complex that was registered under that law as at the start of 1 July
2010; or
(b) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person who owns, controls or
operates the generation complex is registered as a generator in respect of the
generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory
relating to the regulation of energy markets;
(ii) the nameplate rating
in megawatts of the generation complex was first registered under the law at a
time after the start of 1 July 2010 but before 1 April in the
previous eligible financial year;
(iii) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, the nameplate rating in megawatts of
the generation complex was not less than the nameplate rating in megawatts that
was registered as mentioned in subparagraph (ii); or
(c) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) neither paragraph (a)
nor (b) applies;
(ii) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person who owns, controls or
operates the generation complex is registered as a generator in respect of the
generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory
relating to the regulation of energy markets;
(iii) during the period
beginning at the start of 1 July 2010 and ending immediately before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, there were one or more reductions in
the nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation complex;
(iv) the appropriate energy
market operator certifies in writing that there is unlikely to be a breach of
relevant power system reliability standards applicable to the energy market
concerned at any time within 2 years after the reduction or reductions; or
(d) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) neither paragraph (a)
nor (b) applies;
(ii) at a time before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person who owns, controls or
operates the generation complex was registered as a generator in respect of the
generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory
relating to the regulation of energy markets;
(iii) during the period
beginning at the start of 1 July 2010 and ending immediately before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, the registration ceased to be in force;
(iv) the appropriate energy
market operator certifies in writing that there is unlikely to be a breach of
relevant power system reliability standards applicable to the energy market
concerned at any time within 2 years after the cessation; or
(e) the conditions set out in section 171
are satisfied; or
(f) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) the generation complex
passed the power system reliability test in relation to an earlier eligible
financial year because of paragraph (e);
(ii) the generation complex
did so partly because, during the period mentioned in subparagraph 171(3)(a)(ii),
there was a reduction in the nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation
complex;
(iii) during the period
beginning immediately after the end of the period mentioned in subparagraph 171(3)(a)(ii)
and ending immediately before 1 April in the eligible financial year that
preceded the relevant eligible financial year, there was no reduction in the
nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation complex; or
(g) the following conditions are
satisfied:
(i) the generation complex
passed the power system reliability test in relation to an earlier eligible
financial year because of paragraph (e);
(ii) the generation complex
did so partly because of paragraph 171(3)(b).
171
Replacement capacity
(1) This section sets out the conditions
mentioned in paragraph 170(2)(e) that apply for the purposes of ascertaining
whether the generation complex passes the power system reliability test
in relation to an eligible financial year.
(2) The first condition is that neither
paragraph 170(2)(a) nor (b) applies.
(3) The second condition is that either:
(a) both:
(i) as at the start of 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person (the first person)
who owns, controls or operates the generation complex is registered as a
generator in respect of the generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth,
a State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy markets; and
(ii) during the period
beginning at the start of 1 July 2010 and ending immediately before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, there was a reduction in the nameplate
rating in megawatts of the generation complex; or
(b) both:
(i) at a time before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, a person (the first person)
who owns, controls or operates the generation complex was registered as a
generator in respect of the generation complex under a law of the Commonwealth,
a State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy markets; and
(ii) during the period
beginning at the start of 1 July 2010 and ending immediately before 1 April
in the previous eligible financial year, the registration ceased to be in
force.
(4) The third condition is that, as at the
start of 1 April in the previous eligible financial year, the first person
is registered, under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory relating
to the regulation of energy markets, as a generator in respect of one or more
generation units that:
(a) before the start of that 1 April,
have been nominated by the first person under section 172 for the purposes
of the application of this section to the generation complex; and
(b) are not included in the generation
complex; and
(c) are connected to the same
interconnected electricity system as the generation complex; and
(d) if the market relating to the
interconnected electricity system is divided into regions—are located in the
same region as the generation complex; and
(e) entered service on or before 1 December
in the previous eligible financial year; and
(f) were not taken into account under
paragraph (5)(b) for the purposes of ascertaining whether the generation
complex passed the power system reliability test in relation to an earlier
eligible financial year.
(5) The fourth condition is that the sum of:
(a) the nameplate rating in megawatts
of the generation complex that was registered under a law of the Commonwealth,
a State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy markets as at the
start of 1 April in the previous eligible financial year; and
(b) the nameplate rating or ratings in
megawatts of the generation units covered by subsection (4) that was
registered under such a law as at the start of 1 April in the previous
eligible financial year; and
(c) if:
(i) the generation complex
passed the power system reliability test in relation to an earlier eligible
financial year because of paragraph 170(2)(e); and
(ii) the generation complex
did so in relation to whichever is the most recent of those earlier eligible
financial years partly because there were relevant excess megawatts;
those relevant excess megawatts;
equals or exceeds whichever is the least of the following:
(d) whichever of the following is
applicable:
(i) if, as at the start of
1 July 2010, the nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation complex
was registered under such a law—the nameplate rating in megawatts as so
registered;
(ii) if the nameplate
rating in megawatts of the generation complex was first registered under such a
law at a time after the start of 1 July 2010 but before 1 April in
the previous eligible financial year—the nameplate rating in megawatts so
registered;
(e) if the generation complex has
passed the power system reliability test in relation to one or more earlier
eligible financial years because of paragraph 170(2)(c)—the reduced nameplate
rating in megawatts of the generation complex that was applicable under
subparagraph 170(2)(c)(iii) for the purposes of ascertaining whether the
generation complex passed the power system reliability test in relation to
whichever is the most recent of those earlier eligible financial years;
(f) if the generation complex passed
the power system reliability test in relation to one or more earlier eligible
financial years because of paragraph 170(2)(e)—the nameplate rating in
megawatts that was applicable under paragraph (a) of this subsection for
the purposes of ascertaining whether the generation complex passed the power
system reliability test in relation to whichever is the most recent of those
earlier eligible financial years.
The excess (if any) is to be known as the relevant
excess megawatts.
(6) The fifth condition is that the
requirements (if any) set out in the regulations are met.
(7) For the purposes of this section, the nameplate
rating of a generation unit is:
(a) if the appropriate energy market
operator in relation to the relevant generation complex is Australian Energy
Market Operator Limited (ACN 072 010 327)——the maximum generation capacity in
megawatts of the generation complex, most recently published by Australian
Energy Market Operator Limited; and
(b) if the appropriate energy market
operator in relation to the relevant generation complex is the Independent
Market Operator established under the Electricity Industry (Independent
Market Operator) Regulations 2004 of Western Australia—the maximum
generation capacity in megawatts of the generation unit specified in a written
determination made by the Regulator for the purposes of this paragraph.
(8) In making a determination under paragraph (7)(b),
the Regulator may have regard to any information provided to the Regulator by
the Independent Market Operator.
(9) For the purposes of this section, a
generation unit that comprises, or is included in, a generation complex enters
service when the unit is first dispatched to deliver electricity by the
appropriate energy market operator.
172
Nomination of generation units
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation unit
if:
(a) a person (the first person)
who owns, controls or operates the generation unit is registered as a generator
in respect of the generation unit under a law of the Commonwealth, a State or a
Territory relating to the regulation of energy markets; and
(b) the generation unit was first registered
under the law on or after 1 July 2011; and
(c) when the generation unit was first
registered under the law, the first person was registered in respect of the
generation unit under the law; and
(d) if a project to construct and
commission the generation unit was in existence as at the start of 1 July
2011—the project was not fully committed by the project proponent as at the
start of 1 July 2011, having regard to the following matters:
(i) the project proponent’s
rights to land for the construction of the project;
(ii) whether contracts for
the supply and construction of the project’s major plant or equipment
(including contract provisions for project cancellations) were executed;
(iii) the status of all
planning and construction approvals and licences necessary for the commencement
of construction of the project (including completed and approved environmental
impact statements);
(iv) the level of commitment
to financing arrangements for the project;
(v) whether project
construction had commenced before 1 July 2011;
(vi) whether, as at the
start of 1 July 2011, a firm date had been set for project construction to
commence; and
(e) the generation unit has output
that:
(i) is readily
predictable; and
(ii) is not significantly
dependent on factors beyond the control of the operator; and
(f) the likely emissions intensity of
the generation unit during the 2‑year period beginning when the generation unit
enters service does not exceed 0.80; and
(g) the requirements (if any) set out
in the regulations are met.
Nomination of generation unit
(2) The first person may, by written notice
given to the Regulator, nominate the generation unit for the purposes of the
application of section 171 to a specified generation complex.
(3) A nomination must be accompanied by a
report that complies with subsection (4).
(4) A report complies with this subsection
if:
(a) the report is by a person who has
appropriate engineering qualifications; and
(b) the
report sets out the person’s estimate of the likely emissions intensity of the
generation unit during the 2‑year period beginning when the generation unit
enters service; and
(c) the person does not have an
interest, pecuniary or otherwise, in the outcome of the nomination.
(5) A nomination cannot be withdrawn.
(6) The first person is not entitled to
nominate the generation unit if the generation unit has already been nominated
under this section (whether by the first person or by another person).
Emissions intensity
(7) For the purposes of subsection (1),
the likely emissions intensity of a generation unit
during the 2‑year period beginning when the generation unit enters service is
the number that, in the opinion of the Regulator, should be treated as the
likely emissions intensity of the generation unit during that 2‑year period,
having regard to the following matters:
(a) any documents relating to the
design of the generation unit;
(b) if the generation unit has entered
service—the number worked out using the formula set out in subsection (8);
(c) the report mentioned in subsection (3);
(d) such other matters (if any) as the
Regulator considers relevant.
(8) The formula mentioned in paragraph (7)(b)
is:

where:
carbon dioxide equivalence of emissions means
the total number of kilotonnes of the carbon dioxide equivalence of the
greenhouse gases emitted from the combustion of fuel in the generation unit for
the purposes of the generation of electricity during the period when the
generation unit was in service.
gigawatt hours of electricity generated means
the number of gigawatt hours of electricity generated by the generation unit
during the period when the generation complex was in service, as measured at
all generator terminals of the generation unit.
When generation unit enters service
(9) For the purposes of this section, a
generation unit enters service when the unit is first dispatched
to deliver electricity by the appropriate energy market operator.
173
Validity of nomination
Scope
(1) This section applies if a person makes,
or purports to make, a nomination under subsection 172(2).
Requirement
(2) The Regulator must, within 60 days after
receiving the nomination or purported nomination, take all reasonable steps to
inform the person whether or not the Regulator is satisfied that the nomination
or purported nomination is valid.
174
Anticipatory certification—reduction in nameplate rating
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation
complex if a person who owns, controls or operates the generation complex is
registered as a generator in respect of the generation complex under a law of
the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy
markets.
Application
(2) The person may apply, in writing, to the
appropriate energy market operator to certify that if a proposed reduction in
the nameplate rating in megawatts of the generation complex were to occur
during the period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 July
2010; and
(b) ending immediately before 1 April
in a specified eligible financial year;
there is unlikely to be a breach of relevant power system
reliability standards applicable to the energy market concerned at any time
within 2 years after the reduction.
Certification
(3) If an application is made under subsection (2),
the appropriate energy market operator may:
(a) certify in accordance with the
application; or
(b) refuse to so certify.
(4) If, within 120 days after receiving an
application under subsection (2), the appropriate energy market operator
has neither:
(a) certified in accordance with the
application; nor
(b) refused to so certify;
the appropriate energy market operator is taken, for the
purposes of this Act, to have certified in accordance with the application.
Consequences of certification
(5) If:
(a) the appropriate energy market
operator certifies in accordance with the application; and
(b) the proposed reduction occurs;
then, for the purposes of subparagraph 170(2)(c)(iv), the
appropriate energy market operator is taken to have certified in writing that
there is unlikely to be a breach of relevant power system reliability standards
applicable to the energy market concerned at any time within 2 years after the
reduction.
175
Anticipatory certification—cessation of registration as a generator
Scope
(1) This section applies to a generation
complex if a person who owns, controls or operates the generation complex is
registered as a generator in respect of the generation complex under a law of
the Commonwealth, a State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy
markets.
Application
(2) The person may apply, in writing, to the
appropriate energy market operator to certify that if a proposed cessation of
the registration were to occur during the period:
(a) beginning at the start of 1 July
2010; and
(b) ending immediately before 1 April
in a specified eligible financial year;
there is unlikely to be a breach of relevant power system
reliability standards applicable to the energy market concerned at any time
within 2 years after the cessation.
Certification
(3) If an application is made under subsection (2),
the appropriate energy market operator may:
(a) certify in accordance with the
application; or
(b) refuse to so certify.
(4) If, within 120 days after receiving an
application under subsection (2), the appropriate energy market operator
has neither:
(a) certified in accordance with the
application; nor
(b) refused to so certify;
the appropriate energy market operator is taken, for the
purposes of this Act, to have certified in accordance with the application.
Consequences of certification
(5) If:
(a) the appropriate energy market
operator certifies in accordance with the application; and
(b) the proposed cessation occurs;
then, for the purposes of subparagraph 170(2)(d)(iv), the
appropriate energy market operator is taken to have certified in writing that
there is unlikely to be a breach of relevant power system reliability standards
applicable to the energy market concerned at any time within 2 years after the
cessation.
176
Intermediary registered as a generator
If:
(a) a person (the first person)
owns, controls or operates a generation complex; and
(b) under a law of the Commonwealth, a
State or a Territory relating to the regulation of energy markets, the first
person is exempt from the requirement under that law to be registered as a
generator in respect of the generation complex; and
(c) the first person is exempt because
another person (the intermediary) is registered under that law as
a generator in respect of the generation complex;
the intermediary is taken, for the purposes of this
Division, to be a person who controls the generation complex.
Division 5—Clean Energy Investment Plans
177 No
assistance unless Clean Energy Investment Plan given
(1) No free carbon units with a vintage year
of a particular eligible financial year are to be issued in accordance with
this Part in respect of a generation complex unless a person who owns, controls
or operates the generation complex:
(a) gives the Resources and Energy
Minister a Clean Energy Investment Plan for the eligible financial year; and
(b) does so by 15 August in the
eligible financial year.
(2) This section has effect subject to
section 181A (which deals with closure contracts).
178
Clean Energy Investment Plan
For the purposes of this Division, a Clean
Energy Investment Plan given by a person for an eligible financial year
is a plan:
(a) that sets out:
(i) the plans (if any) the
person has for investment in new electrical generation capacity; and
(ii) the plans (if any) the
person has for investment in the reduction of the emissions intensity of a
generation complex (whether or not the generation complex is owned, controlled
or operated by the person); and
(iii) the plans (if any) the
person has for investment in research and development in relation to clean
energy technology; and
(b) if one or more reports that, to
any extent, relate to a generation complex owned, controlled or operated by the
person have been prepared and made available to the public in accordance with
section 22 of the Energy Efficiency Opportunities Act 2006—that:
(i) is accompanied by a
copy of the most recent report; or
(ii) includes the URL of a
website from which a copy of the most recent report can be downloaded.
179
Copy of Clean Energy Investment Plan to be given to the Regulator
If the Resources and Energy Minister
receives a Clean Energy Investment Plan under section 177, he or she must
give a copy of the plan to the Regulator.
180
Publication of Clean Energy Investment Plan
If the Resources and Energy Minister
receives a Clean Energy Investment Plan under section 177, he or she must cause
the Clean Energy Investment Plan to be published on the website of his or her
Department.
Division 6—Closure contracts
181 Restrictions
on assistance if closure contract has been entered into
No free carbon units to be issued
(1) If:
(a) a person who owns, operates or
controls a generation complex has entered into a contract with the Commonwealth
that relates to the closure of the generation complex; and
(b) the contract contains a provision
to the effect that the contract is a closure contract for the purposes of this
Act in relation to all of the following eligible financial years:
(i) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2013;
(ii) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2014;
(iii) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2015;
(iv) the eligible financial
year beginning on 1 July 2016;
no free carbon units are to be issued in accordance with
this Part in respect of the generation complex.
No free carbon units with a particular vintage year to
be issued
(2) If:
(a) a person who owns, operates or
controls a generation complex has entered into a contract with the Commonwealth
that relates to the closure of the generation complex; and
(b) the contract contains a provision
to the effect that the contract is a closure contract for the purposes of this
Act in relation to one or more specified eligible financial years; and
(c) subsection (1) does not
apply;
no free carbon units with a vintage year of any of those
eligible financial years are to be issued in accordance with this Part in
respect of the generation complex.
181A
Exemptions from power system reliability test and Clean Energy Investment Plan
If:
(a) a person who owns, operates or
controls a generation complex has entered into a contract with the Commonwealth
that relates to the closure of the generation complex; and
(b) the contract contains a provision
to the effect that the contract is a closure contract for the purposes of this
Act in relation to one or more eligible financial years;
the following provisions do not apply in relation to the
generation complex:
(c) subsection 169(2);
(d) section 177.
Note 1: Subsection 169(2) deals with the power system
reliability test.
Note 2: Section 177 deals with Clean Energy
Investment Plans.
Part 9—Publication of information
Division 1—Introduction
182
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The Regulator must keep a
Liable Entities Public Information Database.
• Certain information about
liable entities must be entered in the Information Database.
• The Regulator must publish
certain other information about the operation of this Act.
Division 2—Information about liable entities
183
Liable Entities Public Information Database
(1) The Regulator must keep a database, to be
known as the Liable Entities Public Information Database.
Note: In this Act, Information Database
means the Liable Entities Public Information Database—see section 5.
(2) The Information Database is to be
maintained by electronic means.
(3) The Information Database is to be made
available for inspection on the Regulator’s website.
184
Liable entities to be entered in the Information Database
Making of entry
(1) If the Regulator has reasonable grounds
to believe that a person is, or is likely to be, a liable entity for an
eligible financial year, the Regulator must make an entry for the person in the
Information Database in relation to the eligible financial year.
(2) If the Regulator makes the entry, the Regulator
must give written notice of the entry to the person.
Removal of entry
(3) If:
(a) there is an entry for a person in
the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial year; and
(b) the Regulator has reasonable
grounds to believe that the person is not a liable entity for that eligible
financial year;
the Regulator must remove the entry from the Information
Database.
(4) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (3):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by the person; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
(5) If the Regulator removes the entry, the Regulator
must give written notice of the removal to the person.
(6) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
remove the entry; and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application by the person;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the person.
185
Emissions number to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is an entry
for a person in the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial
year.
Emissions number
(2) As soon as practicable after receiving a
report under section 22A of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting
Act 2007 that specifies a number as the person’s emissions number for the
eligible financial year, the Regulator must enter that number in the
Information Database.
(3) As soon as practicable after making an
assessment under section 119 or 120 of the person’s emissions number for
the eligible financial year, the Regulator must enter details of the assessment
in the Information Database.
(4) As soon as practicable after amending an
assessment under section 119 or 120 of the person’s emissions number for the
eligible financial year, the Regulator must enter details of the amended
assessment in the Information Database.
186
Estimate of total of emissions numbers to be entered in the Information
Database
Before the end of 28 February next
following an eligible financial year, the Regulator must:
(a) prepare a reasonable estimate of
the total of the emissions numbers of liable entities for the eligible
financial year; and
(b) enter that estimate in the
Information Database.
187
Unit shortfall to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is an entry
for a person in the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial
year.
Unit shortfall
(2) If:
(a) the Regulator is of the opinion
that the person has a unit shortfall for the eligible financial year; and
(b) the Regulator has not made an
assessment under section 141 of the person’s unit shortfall for the
eligible financial year;
the Regulator must enter in the Information Database:
(c) the number that represents the Regulator’s
reasonable estimate of the number of units in the person’s unit shortfall for
the eligible financial year; and
(d) the amount that represents the Regulator’s
reasonable estimate of the amount of unit shortfall charge payable by the person
in relation to the unit shortfall.
(3) If the Regulator makes an assessment
under section 141 of the person’s unit shortfall for the eligible
financial year and the unit shortfall charge payable on that shortfall, the Regulator
must enter details of the assessment in the Information Database.
(4) In making an estimate under this section,
the Regulator may rely on a report given under the National Greenhouse and
Energy Reporting Act 2007 by the person.
(5) If:
(a) an assessment has been made under
section 141 of the person’s unit shortfall for the eligible financial
year; and
(b) any of the following subparagraphs
applies:
(i) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment is being reconsidered by the Regulator
under section 283;
(ii) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment has been affirmed or varied by the
Regulator under section 283, and the decision as so affirmed or varied is
the subject of an application for review by the Administrative Appeals
Tribunal;
(iii) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment is the subject of an application
for review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal;
then:
(c) in any case—the Regulator must make
an appropriate annotation in the Information Database; and
(d) if subparagraph (b)(i)
applies—when the Regulator notifies the applicant for reconsideration of the Regulator’s
decision on the reconsideration, the Regulator must make an appropriate
annotation in the Information Database; and
(e) if subparagraph (b)(ii) or
(iii) applies—when the review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal (including
any court proceedings arising out of the review) has been finalised, the
Regulator must make an appropriate annotation in the Information Database.
188
Unpaid unit shortfall charge to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) there is an entry for a person in
the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial year; and
(b) the person has a unit shortfall
for the eligible financial year; and
(c) an amount of unit shortfall charge
payable by the person in relation to the unit shortfall remains unpaid after
the time when the amount became due for payment.
Unit shortfall charge amount
(2) The Regulator must enter in the
Information Database details of the unpaid amount.
189
Number of surrendered eligible emissions units to be entered in the Information
Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is an entry
for a person in the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial
year.
Eligible emissions units surrendered
(2) As soon as practicable after receiving a
notice under section 122 that surrenders, in relation to the eligible
financial year, one or more eligible emissions units held by the person, the Regulator
must enter in the Information Database:
(a) the total number of eligible
emissions units surrendered; and
(b) the total number of each of the
following types of eligible emissions units surrendered:
(i) carbon units;
(ii) eligible international
emissions units;
(iii) Australian carbon
credit units.
190
Relinquishment requirement to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if there is an entry
for a person in the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial
year.
Relinquishment requirement
(2) If, under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, the person is required, during the eligible financial
year, to relinquish a particular number of carbon units, the Regulator must enter
in the Information Database details of the relinquishment requirement.
(3) If any of the following paragraphs apply:
(a) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units is being reconsidered by the Regulator
under section 283;
(b) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units has been affirmed or varied by
the Regulator under section 283, and the decision as so affirmed or varied
is the subject of an application for review by the Administrative Appeals
Tribunal;
(c) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units is the subject of an
application for review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal;
then:
(d) in any case—the Regulator must make
an appropriate annotation in the Information Database; and
(e) if paragraph (a) applies—when
the Regulator notifies the applicant for reconsideration of the Regulator’s
decision on the reconsideration, the Regulator must make an appropriate
annotation in the Information Database; and
(f) if paragraph (b) or (c)
applies—when the review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal (including any
court proceedings arising out of the review) has been finalised, the Regulator
must make an appropriate annotation in the Information Database.
191
Unpaid administrative penalty to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) there is an entry for a person in
the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial year; and
(b) the person is required, under this
Act or the Jobs and Competitiveness Program, to relinquish a particular number
of carbon units; and
(c) during the eligible financial
year, an amount (the penalty amount) payable by the person under
section 212 in relation to non‑compliance with the relinquishment
requirement remains unpaid after the time when the penalty amount became due
for payment.
Penalty amount
(2) The Regulator must enter in the
Information Database details of the unpaid penalty amount.
192
Number of relinquished units to be entered in the Information Database
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) there is an entry for a person in
the Information Database in relation to an eligible financial year; and
(b) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, the person is required to relinquish a particular
number of carbon units; and
(c) during the eligible financial
year, the person relinquishes one or more carbon units in order to comply with
the requirement.
Carbon units relinquished
(2) As soon as practicable after receiving
the notice of relinquishment, the Regulator must enter in the Information
Database the total number of carbon units relinquished.
193
Correction and rectification of the Information Database
Corrections of clerical errors or obvious defects
(1) The Regulator may alter the Information
Database for the purposes of correcting a clerical error or an obvious defect
in the Information Database.
General power of correction
(2) The Regulator may make such entries in
the Information Database as the Regulator considers appropriate for the
purposes of ensuring that the Information Database is accurate.
(3) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (2):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by a person; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
Division 3—Information about holders of Registry accounts
194 Information about
holders of Registry accounts
The Regulator must:
(a) publish on its website:
(i) the name of each
person who has a Registry account; and
(ii) the person’s address
last known to the Regulator; and
(b) keep that information up‑to‑date.
Division 4—Information about units
195
Information about auction results—general
For each auction of carbon units
conducted by the Regulator, the Regulator must publish the following
information on its website:
(a) the date of the auction;
(b) the vintage year, or vintage
years, of the carbon units auctioned;
(c) a statement setting out, for the
vintage year, or each of those vintage years, as the case may be:
(i) each per unit charge
that was payable for the issue of carbon units with the vintage year concerned;
and
(ii) for each such per unit
charge—the total number of carbon units with the vintage year concerned that
were issued for the per unit charge.
196
Information about auction results—last 6 months
6 months ending on 31 May
(1) Within 7 business days after the end of:
(a) May 2015; and
(b) each later May;
the Regulator must publish on its website the amount
worked out to 2 decimal places (rounding up if the third decimal place is 5 or
more) using the formula:

where:
number of units issued as the result of auctions
means the total number of carbon units that were issued as the result of auctions
conducted by the Regulator during the 6‑month period ending at the end of that
May.
total auction proceeds means the total amount
paid or payable by way of charges for the issue of carbon units that were
issued as the result of auctions conducted by the Regulator during the 6‑month
period ending at the end of that May.
6 months ending on 30 November
(2) Within 7 business days after the end of:
(a) November 2015; and
(b) each later November;
the Regulator must publish on its website the amount
worked out to 2 decimal places (rounding up if the third decimal place is 5 or
more) using the formula:

where:
number of units issued as the result of auctions
means the total number of carbon units that were issued as the result of auctions
conducted by the Regulator during the 6‑month period ending at the end of that
November.
total auction proceeds means the total amount
paid or payable by way of charges for the issue of carbon units that were
issued as the result of auctions conducted by the Regulator during the 6‑month
period ending at the end of that November.
Vintage years
(3) For the purposes of this section, if:
(a) a carbon unit is issued as the
result of an auction conducted by the Regulator during an eligible financial
year beginning on or after 1 July 2015; and
(b) the vintage year of the unit is
not that eligible financial year;
disregard the issue of the unit.
197
Information about issue of carbon units for a fixed charge
2012‑2013
(1) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2014, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon units
issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning on 1 July
2012.
2013‑2014
(2) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2015, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon units
issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning on 1 July
2013.
2014‑2015
(3) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2016, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon units
issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning on 1 July
2014.
2015‑2016
(4) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2017, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon
units issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning
on 1 July 2015.
2016‑2017
(5) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2018, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon
units issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning
on 1 July 2016.
2017‑2018
(6) As soon as practicable after 15 February
2019, the Regulator must publish on its website the total number of carbon
units issued in accordance with section 100 with a vintage year beginning
on 1 July 2017.
198
Information about issue of free carbon units
Jobs and Competitiveness Program
(1) As soon as practicable after free carbon
units are issued to a person in accordance with the Jobs and Competitiveness
Program, the Regulator must publish on its website:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) the total number of free carbon
units issued to the person; and
(c) the vintage year of the free
carbon units issued to the person; and
(d) each activity that:
(i) under the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, is taken to be an emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
activity; and
(ii) is an activity in
respect of which the free carbon units were issued to the person.
Coal‑fired electricity generation
(2) As soon as practicable after free carbon
units are issued to a person in accordance with Part 8 (coal‑fired
electricity generation), the Regulator must publish on its website:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) the total number of free carbon
units issued to the person; and
(c) the vintage year of the free
carbon units issued to the person.
199
Quarterly reports about issue of free carbon units
As soon as practicable after the end of
each quarter, the Regulator must publish the following information on its
website:
(a) the total number of free carbon
units with a particular vintage year issued during the quarter in accordance
with the Jobs and Competitiveness Program;
(b) for each activity that, under the Jobs
and Competitiveness Program, is taken to be an emissions‑intensive trade‑exposed
activity—the total number of free carbon units with a particular vintage year
issued during the quarter in respect of that activity in accordance with that
program;
(c) if, at the end of the quarter,
there were one or more pending applications for free carbon units under the Jobs
and Competitiveness Program—the total number of free carbon units to which
those pending applications relate;
(d) the total number of free carbon
units with a particular vintage year issued during the quarter in accordance
with Part 8 (coal‑fired electricity generation).
200
Information about surrender of borrowed and banked eligible emissions units
Borrowed units
(1) As soon as practicable after the end of 1 February
next following an eligible financial year, the Regulator must publish on its
website the total number of carbon units that:
(a) were surrendered in relation to
the eligible financial year; and
(b) had a vintage year later than the
eligible financial year.
Banked units
(2) As soon as practicable after the end of 1 February
next following an eligible financial year, the Regulator must publish on its
website the total number of carbon units that:
(a) were surrendered in relation to
the eligible financial year; and
(b) had a vintage year earlier than
the eligible financial year.
201
Information about total emissions numbers and unit shortfalls
As soon as practicable after 1 March
following an eligible financial year, the Regulator must:
(a) calculate:
(i) the total of the
numbers that, in the Regulator’s opinion, are the emissions numbers of liable
entities for the eligible financial year; and
(ii) the number that, in
the Regulator’s opinion, is the total of the unit shortfalls of liable entities
in relation to the eligible financial year; and
(b) publish the results on the
Regulator’s website.
202
Publication of concise description of the characteristics of carbon units
The Regulator must:
(a) as soon as practicable after the
commencement of this section, publish on the Regulator’s website a statement
setting out a concise description of the characteristics of carbon units; and
(b) keep that statement up‑to‑date.
Division 5—Information about relinquishment requirements for persons
other than liable entities
203
Information about relinquishment requirements
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, a person is required, during an eligible financial
year, to relinquish a particular number of carbon units; and
(b) there is no entry for the person
in the Information Database in relation to the eligible financial year.
Relinquishment requirement
(2) The Regulator must publish on its
website:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) details of the relinquishment
requirement.
(3) If any of the following paragraphs
applies:
(a) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units is being reconsidered by the Regulator
under section 283;
(b) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units has been affirmed or varied by
the Regulator under section 283, and the decision as so affirmed or varied
is the subject of an application for review by the Administrative Appeals
Tribunal;
(c) the decision to require the person
to relinquish a specified number of carbon units is the subject of an
application for review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal;
then:
(d) in any case—the Regulator must publish
an appropriate annotation on its website; and
(e) if paragraph (a) applies—when
the Regulator notifies the applicant for reconsideration of the Regulator’s
decision on the reconsideration, the Regulator must publish an appropriate
annotation on its website; and
(f) if paragraph (b) or (c)
applies—when the review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal (including any
court proceedings arising out of the review) has been finalised, the Regulator
must publish an appropriate annotation on its website.
204
Information about unpaid administrative penalties
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, a person is required to relinquish a particular number
of carbon units; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
an amount (the penalty amount) payable by the person under
section 212 in relation to non‑compliance with the relinquishment requirement
remains unpaid after the time when the penalty amount became due for payment;
and
(c) there is no entry for the person
in the Information Database in relation to the eligible financial year.
Penalty amount
(2) The Regulator must publish on its
website:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) details of the unpaid penalty
amount.
205
Information about number of relinquished units
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, a person is required to relinquish a particular number
of carbon units; and
(b) during an eligible financial year,
the person relinquishes one or more carbon units in order to comply with the
requirement; and
(c) there is no entry for the person
in the Information Database in relation to the eligible financial year.
Carbon units relinquished
(2) As soon as practicable after receiving
the relinquishment notice, the Regulator must publish on its website:
(a) the name of the person; and
(b) the total number of carbon units
relinquished.
Division 6—Information about designated large landfill facilities
206
Publication of list of designated large landfill facilities
(1) The regulations may require the Regulator
to publish on its website, during each eligible financial year, a list of the
landfill facilities that, in the Regulator’s opinion, were designated large
landfill facilities in relation to the previous eligible financial year.
(2) The list must set out the location of
each landfill facility on the list.
(3) The regulations may provide that the list
is to be published on or before such day as is ascertained in accordance with
the regulations.
(4) For the purposes of subsection (1),
assume that the financial year beginning on 1 July 2011 is an eligible
financial year.
Part 10—Fraudulent conduct
207
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• If a person is convicted of
an offence relating to fraudulent conduct, and the issue of carbon units is
attributable to the commission of the offence, a court may order the person to
relinquish a specified number of carbon units.
208
Units issued as a result of fraudulent conduct—court may order relinquishment
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) one or more carbon units were
issued to a person on a particular occasion; and
(b) the person has been convicted of
an offence against:
(i) section 134.1 of
the Criminal Code; or
(ii) section 134.2 of
the Criminal Code; or
(iii) section 135.1 of
the Criminal Code; or
(iv) section 135.2 of
the Criminal Code; or
(v) section 135.4 of
the Criminal Code; or
(vi) section 136.1 of
the Criminal Code; or
(vii) section 137.1 of
the Criminal Code; or
(viii) section 137.2 of
the Criminal Code; and
(c) an appropriate court is satisfied
that the issue of any or all of the units was directly or indirectly
attributable to the commission of the offence.
Note: For appropriate court, see subsection (8).
Relinquishment
(2) The court may, on application made by the
Director of Public Prosecutions or the Regulator, order the person:
(a) to relinquish a specified number
of carbon units not exceeding the number of carbon units issued as mentioned in
paragraph (1)(a); and
(b) to do so by a specified time.
Compliance
(3) The person must comply with an order
under subsection (2).
Note: An administrative penalty is payable under
section 212 for non‑compliance with a relinquishment requirement.
(4) The person does not comply with an order
under subsection (2) unless the notice of relinquishment specifies the
order.
(5) To avoid doubt, the person is required to
comply with an order under subsection (2) even if:
(a) the person is not the registered
holder of any carbon units; or
(b) the person is not the registered
holder of the number of carbon units required to be relinquished.
Conviction
(6) It is immaterial whether the conviction
occurred before, at or after the commencement of this section.
Copy of order
(7) A copy of an order under subsection (2)
is to be given to the Regulator.
Appropriate court
(8) For the purposes of this section, each of
the following courts is an appropriate court:
(a) the court that convicted the
person of the offence;
(b) the Federal Court;
(c) the Supreme Court of a State or
Territory.
Spent convictions
(9) Nothing in this section affects the
operation of Part VIIC of the Crimes Act 1914 (which includes
provisions that, in certain circumstances, relieve persons from the requirement
to disclose spent convictions and require persons aware of such convictions to
disregard them).
Part 11—Relinquishment of carbon units
Division 1—Introduction
209
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• If a person is the
registered holder of one or more carbon units, the person may, by electronic
notice transmitted to the Regulator, relinquish any or all of those units.
• An administrative penalty
is payable for non‑compliance with a relinquishment requirement under this Act
or the Jobs and Competitiveness Program.
Note: A person may be required to relinquish carbon
units under section 208 (fraudulent conduct) or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program.
Division 2—How carbon units are relinquished
210
How carbon units are relinquished
(1) If a person is the registered holder of
one or more carbon units, the person may, by electronic notice transmitted to
the Regulator, relinquish any or all of those units.
(2) A notice under subsection (1) must:
(a) specify the carbon unit or units
that are being relinquished; and
(b) if the carbon unit or units are
being relinquished in order to comply with a requirement under the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program—specify the requirement to which the relinquishment
relates; and
(c) if the carbon unit or units are
being relinquished in order to comply with an order under subsection 208(2)
(fraudulent conduct)—specify the order to which the relinquishment relates; and
(d) specify the account number or
account numbers of the person’s Registry account, or the person’s Registry
accounts, in which there is an entry or entries for the carbon unit or units
that are being relinquished.
(3) If:
(a) a carbon unit is relinquished by a
person; and
(b) the unit has a vintage year that
is a fixed charge year;
then:
(c) the unit is cancelled; and
(d) the Regulator must remove the
entry for the unit from the person’s Registry account in which there is an
entry for the unit.
(4) If:
(a) a carbon unit is relinquished by a
person; and
(b) subsection (3) does not apply
to the relinquishment of the unit;
then:
(c) the Regulator must transfer the
unit from the person’s Registry account in which there is an entry for the unit
to the Commonwealth relinquished units account; and
(d) when the unit is transferred to
the Commonwealth relinquished units account, property in the unit is
transferred to the Commonwealth.
(5) The Registry must set out a record of
each notice under subsection (1).
211
Deemed relinquishment
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, a person is subject to a requirement to relinquish a
particular number of carbon units (the relinquishment number);
and
(b) under this Act or the Jobs and
Competitiveness Program, the Regulator is required to issue to the person a
particular number of carbon units (the issue number).
Deemed relinquishment
(2) If the issue number exceeds the
relinquishment number:
(a) the person is taken, immediately
after the issue of the units mentioned in paragraph (1)(b) of this
section, to have, by electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator under
subsection 210(1), relinquished a number of those units equal to the
relinquishment number; and
(b) that notice is taken to have
specified, as the units that are being relinquished, such units as are
determined by the Regulator; and
(c) that notice is taken to have
specified the requirement mentioned in paragraph (1)(a) of this section as
the requirement to which the relinquishment relates.
(3) If the relinquishment number equals or
exceeds the issue number:
(a) the person is taken, immediately
after the issue of the units mentioned in paragraph (1)(b) of this
section, to have, by electronic notice transmitted to the Regulator under
subsection 210(1), relinquished all of the units mentioned in paragraph (1)(b)
of this section; and
(b) that notice is taken to have
specified, as the units that are being relinquished, all of the units mentioned
in paragraph (1)(b); and
(c) that notice is taken to have
specified the requirement mentioned in paragraph (1)(a) of this section as
the requirement to which the relinquishment relates.
Division 3—Compliance with relinquishment requirements
212
Compliance with relinquishment requirements
Scope
(1) This section applies if, under this Act
or the Jobs and Competitiveness Program:
(a) a person is required to relinquish
a particular number of carbon units; and
(b) the person is required to do so by
a particular time (the compliance deadline).
No units relinquished
(2) If, by the compliance deadline, the
person has not relinquished any carbon units in order to comply with the
requirement, the person is liable to pay to the Commonwealth, by way of
penalty, an amount worked out using the formula:

where:
prescribed amount for the financial year in which the
compliance deadline occurs means:
(a) if the requirement arose before the
end of 31 July 2013—$46; or
(b) if the requirement arose during
the period beginning at the start of 1 August 2013 and ending at the end
of 31 July 2014—$48.30; or
(c) if the requirement arose during
the period beginning at the start of 1 August 2014 and ending at the end
of 31 July 2015—$50.80; or
(d) in any other case:
(i) if an amount is
specified in the regulations for the financial year in which the compliance
deadline occurs—that amount; or
(ii) otherwise—an amount equal
to 200% of the benchmark average auction charge for the previous financial
year.
Relinquishment of insufficient units
(3) If, by the compliance deadline:
(a) the person has relinquished one or
more carbon units in order to comply with the requirement; and
(b) the number of relinquished units
is less than the number of units required to be relinquished;
the person is liable to pay to the Commonwealth, by way of
penalty, an amount worked out using the formula:

where:
prescribed amount for the financial year in which the
compliance deadline occurs means:
(a) if the requirement arose before
the end of 31 July 2013—$46; or
(b) if the requirement arose during
the period beginning at the start of 1 August 2013 and ending at the end
of 31 July 2014—$48.30; or
(c) if the requirement arose during
the period beginning at the start of 1 August 2014 and ending at the end
of 31 July 2015—$50.80; or
(d) in any other case:
(i) if an amount is
specified in the regulations for the financial year in which the compliance
deadline occurs—that amount; or
(ii) otherwise—an amount
equal to 200% of the benchmark average auction charge for the previous
financial year.
When penalty becomes due and payable
(4) An amount payable under this section is
due and payable at the end of 30 days after the compliance deadline.
Compliance
(5) For the purposes of this section, a
person relinquishes carbon units in order to comply with a particular
requirement under this Act or the Jobs and Competitiveness Program if, and only
if, the notice of relinquishment specifies the requirement.
(6) To avoid doubt, a person may be liable to
pay a penalty under this section even if:
(a) the person is not the registered
holder of any carbon units; or
(b) the person is not the registered
holder of the number of carbon units required to be relinquished.
213
Late payment penalty
Penalty
(1) If an amount payable by a person under
section 212 remains unpaid after the time when it became due for payment,
the person is liable to pay, by way of penalty, an amount calculated at the
rate of:
(a) 20% per annum; or
(b) if a lower rate per annum is
specified in the regulations—that lower rate per annum;
on the amount unpaid, computed from that time.
Power to remit
(2) The Regulator may remit the whole or a
part of an amount payable under subsection (1) if:
(a) the Regulator is satisfied that
the person did not contribute to the delay in payment and has taken reasonable
steps to mitigate the causes of the delay; or
(b) the Regulator is satisfied:
(i) that the person
contributed to the delay but has taken reasonable steps to mitigate the causes
of the delay; and
(ii) having regard to the
nature of the reasons that caused the delay, that it would be fair and
reasonable to remit some or all of the amount; or
(c) the Regulator is satisfied that
there are special circumstances that make it reasonable to remit some or all of
the amount.
(3) The Regulator may exercise the power
conferred by subsection (2):
(a) on written application being made
to the Regulator by a person; or
(b) on the Regulator’s own initiative.
Refusal
(4) If:
(a) the Regulator decides to refuse to
remit the whole or a part of an amount payable under subsection (1); and
(b) the Regulator made the decision in
response to an application;
the Regulator must give written notice of the decision to
the applicant.
214
Recovery of penalties
An amount payable under section 212
or 213:
(a) is a debt due to the Commonwealth;
and
(b) may be recovered by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, by action in a court of competent jurisdiction.
215
Set‑off
If:
(a) an amount (the first amount)
is payable under section 212 or 213 by a person; and
(b) the following conditions are
satisfied in relation to another amount (the second amount):
(i) the amount is payable
by the Commonwealth to the person;
(ii) the amount is of a
kind specified in the regulations;
the Regulator may, on behalf of the Commonwealth, set off
the whole or a part of the first amount against the whole or a part of the
second amount.
216
Refund of overpayments
If either of the following amounts has
been overpaid by a person, the amount overpaid must be refunded by the
Commonwealth:
(a) an amount payable under section 212;
(b) an amount payable under section 213.
Note: For appropriation, see section 28 of the Financial
Management and Accountability Act 1997.
Part 12—Notification of significant holding of carbon units
217
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The controlling corporation
of a group must notify the Regulator if the group has a significant holding of
carbon units.
• A non‑group entity must
notify the Regulator if the non‑group entity has a significant holding of
carbon units.
218
Notification of significant holding of carbon units—controlling corporation of
a group
Scope
(1) This section applies to a controlling
corporation if any of the following events occurs:
(a) the controlling corporation’s
group begins to have a significant holding of carbon units with a particular
vintage year;
(b) the controlling corporation’s
group ceases to have a significant holding of carbon units with a particular
vintage year;
(c) there is a change in the
significant holding percentage for the controlling corporation’s group in
relation to carbon units with a particular vintage year.
Note 1: For significant holding, see subsection (7).
Note 2: For significant holding percentage,
see subsection (8).
Notice
(2) The controlling corporation must, within
5 business days after becoming aware of the event, give the Regulator a written
notice:
(a) informing the Regulator of the
event; and
(b) setting out the additional
information mentioned in subsection (3).
(3) The additional information to be set out
in the notice is as follows:
(a) the name and address of the
controlling corporation;
(b) for each member of the controlling
corporation’s group that, immediately after the event, holds one or more carbon
units with the vintage year:
(i) the name and address
of the member; and
(ii) details of the
member’s holding of those carbon units;
(c) such other information (if any) as
is specified in the regulations.
Ancillary contraventions
(4) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (2); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (2); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (2);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (2).
Civil penalty provisions
(5) Subsections (2) and (4) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Regulator to publish certain information
(6) If the Regulator receives a notice under subsection (2)
in relation to:
(a) the controlling corporation; and
(b) carbon units with a particular
vintage year;
the Regulator must publish on its website:
(c) the name and address of the
controlling corporation; and
(d) if the controlling corporation’s
group has a significant holding percentage in relation to those units—the
significant holding percentage; and
(e) if the controlling corporation’s
group does not have a significant holding of those units—a statement to that
effect.
Significant holding
(7) For the purposes of this section, the
controlling corporation’s group has a significant holding of
carbon units with a particular vintage year if the percentage worked out using
the following formula is 10% or more:

Significant holding percentage
(8) If the controlling corporation’s group
has a significant holding of carbon units with a particular vintage year, then,
for the purposes of this section, the significant holding percentage
for the controlling corporation’s group in relation to those units is:
(a) the percentage worked out using
the formula in subsection (7) in relation to those units; or
(b) if the percentage worked out using
the formula in subsection (7) in relation to those units is not a whole
percentage—the percentage rounded down to the nearest whole percentage.
Exception
(9) Paragraphs (1)(a) and (b) do not
apply to a carbon unit with a vintage year that is a fixed charge year.
219
Notification of significant holding of carbon units—non‑group entity
Scope
(1) This section applies to a non‑group
entity if any of the following events occurs:
(a) the non‑group entity begins to
have a significant holding of carbon units with a particular vintage year;
(b) the non‑group entity ceases to
have a significant holding of carbon units with a particular vintage year;
(c) there is a change in the
significant holding percentage for the non‑group entity in relation to carbon
units with a particular vintage year.
Note 1: For significant holding, see subsection (7).
Note 2: For significant holding percentage,
see subsection (8).
Notice
(2) The non‑group entity must, within 5
business days after becoming aware of the event, give the Regulator a written
notice:
(a) informing the Regulator of the
event; and
(b) setting out the additional
information mentioned in subsection (3).
(3) The additional information to be set out
in the notice is as follows:
(a) the name and address of the non‑group
entity;
(b) the total number of carbon units
with the vintage year held by the non‑group entity immediately after the event;
(c) such other information (if any) as
is specified in the regulations.
Ancillary contraventions
(4) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (2); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (2); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (2);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (2).
Civil penalty provisions
(5) Subsections (2) and (4) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Regulator to publish certain information
(6) If the Regulator receives a notice under subsection (2)
in relation to:
(a) the non‑group entity; and
(b) carbon units with a particular
vintage year;
the Regulator must publish on its website:
(c) the name and address of the non‑group
entity; and
(d) if the non‑group entity has a
significant holding percentage in relation to those units—the significant
holding percentage; and
(e) if the non‑group entity does not
have a significant holding of those units—a statement to that effect.
Significant holding
(7) For the purposes of this section, the non‑group
entity has a significant holding of carbon units with a
particular vintage year if the percentage worked out using the following
formula is 10% or more:

Significant holding percentage
(8) If the non‑group entity has a significant
holding of carbon units with a particular vintage year, then, for the purposes
of this section, the significant holding percentage for the non‑group
entity in relation to those units is:
(a) the percentage worked out using
the formula in subsection (7) in relation to those units; or
(b) if the percentage worked out using
the formula in subsection (7) in relation to those units is not a whole
percentage—the percentage rounded down to the nearest whole percentage.
Exception
(9) Paragraphs (1)(a) and (b) do not
apply to a carbon unit with a vintage year that is a fixed charge year.
Part 13—Information‑gathering powers
220
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The
Regulator may obtain information or documents.
221 Regulator
may obtain information or documents
Scope
(1) This section applies to a person if the Regulator
believes on reasonable grounds that the person has information or a document
that is relevant to the operation of:
(a) this Act; or
(b) the associated provisions.
Requirement
(2) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to the person, require the person:
(a) to give to the Regulator, within
the period and in the manner and form specified in the notice, any such
information; or
(b) to produce to the Regulator,
within the period and in the manner specified in the notice, any such
documents; or
(c) to make copies of any such
documents and to produce to the Regulator, within the period and in the manner
specified in the notice, those copies.
(3) A period specified under subsection (2)
must not be shorter than 14 days after the notice is given.
Compliance
(4) A person must comply with a requirement
under subsection (2) to the extent that the person is capable of doing so.
Ancillary contraventions
(5) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (4); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (4); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (4);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (4).
Civil penalty provisions
(6) Subsections (4) and (5) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
No limitation
(7) This section is not limited by:
(a) any other provision of this Act
(other than section 302); or
(b) any provision of the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007;
that relates to the powers of the Regulator to obtain
information or documents.
222
Copying documents—compensation
A person is entitled to be paid by the Regulator,
on behalf of the Commonwealth, reasonable compensation for complying with a
requirement covered by paragraph 221(2)(c).
223
Copies of documents
(1) The Regulator may:
(a) inspect a document or copy
produced under subsection 221(2); and
(b) make and retain copies of, or take
and retain extracts from, such a document.
(2) The Regulator may retain possession of a
copy of a document produced in accordance with a requirement covered by
paragraph 221(2)(c).
224 Regulator
may retain documents
(1) The Regulator may take, and retain for as
long as is necessary, possession of a document produced under subsection 221(2).
(2) The person otherwise entitled to
possession of the document is entitled to be supplied, as soon as practicable,
with a copy certified by the Regulator to be a true copy.
(3) The certified copy must be received in
all courts and tribunals as evidence as if it were the original.
(4) Until a certified copy is supplied, the Regulator
must, at such times and places as the Regulator thinks appropriate, permit the
person otherwise entitled to possession of the document, or a person authorised
by that person, to inspect and make copies of, or take extracts from, the
document.
225
Self‑incrimination
(1) A person is not excused from giving
information or producing a document under section 221 on the ground that
the information or the production of the document might tend to incriminate the
person or expose the person to a penalty.
(2) However, in the case of an individual:
(a) the information given or the
document produced; or
(b) giving the information or
producing the document; or
(c) any information, document or thing
obtained as a direct or indirect consequence of giving the information or
producing the document;
is not admissible in evidence against the individual:
(d) in civil proceedings for the
recovery of a penalty (other than proceedings for the recovery of a penalty
under section 135, 212 or 213); or
(e) in criminal proceedings (other
than proceedings for an offence against section 137.1 or 137.2 of the Criminal
Code that relates to this Part).
Part 14—Record‑keeping requirements
226
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The regulations may require
a person to:
(a) make a
record of information; and
(b) retain the record.
• Records must be kept of the
quotation of OTNs.
227
Record‑keeping requirements—general
(1) The regulations may require a person to:
(a) make a record of specified
information, where the information is relevant to:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the associated
provisions; and
(b) retain:
(i) the record; or
(ii) a copy of the record;
for 5 years after the making of
the record.
(2) If a person is subject to a requirement
under regulations made for the purposes of subsection (1), the person must
comply with that requirement.
Ancillary contraventions
(3) A person must not:
(a) aid, abet, counsel or procure a
contravention of subsection (2); or
(b) induce, whether by threats or
promises or otherwise, a contravention of subsection (2); or
(c) be in any way, directly or
indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, a contravention of subsection (2);
or
(d) conspire with others to effect a
contravention of subsection (2).
Civil penalty provisions
(4) Subsections (2) and (3) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Other provisions do not limit this section
(5) This section is not limited by:
(a) any other provision of this Act;
or
(b) a provision of the National
Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007;
that relates to the keeping or retention of records.
228
Record‑keeping requirements—quotation of OTN
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) a person (the supplier)
supplies an amount of natural gas to another person (the recipient);
and
(b) the recipient quotes the recipient’s
OTN in relation to the supply.
Record‑keeping requirements
(2) The supplier must retain:
(a) the statement by which the
quotation was made; or
(b) a copy of that statement;
for 5 years after the quotation occurred.
(3) The recipient must:
(a) make a copy of the statement by
which the quotation was made; and
(b) retain that copy for 5 years after
the quotation occurred.
Civil penalty
(4) Subsections (2) and (3) are civil
penalty provisions.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
Part 15—Monitoring powers
Division 1—Simplified outline
229
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• An inspector may enter premises
for the purpose of:
(a) determining
whether this Act or the associated provisions have been complied with; or
(b) substantiating
information provided under this Act or the associated provisions.
• Entry must be with the
consent of the occupier of the premises or under a monitoring warrant.
• An inspector who enters
premises may exercise monitoring powers. The inspector may be assisted by other
persons if that assistance is necessary and reasonable.
• The occupier of the
premises has certain rights and responsibilities.
Division 2—Appointment of inspectors and issue of identity cards
230
Appointment of inspectors
(1) The Regulator may, in writing, appoint:
(a) a member of the staff of the Regulator
who:
(i) is an SES employee or
acting SES employee; or
(ii) is an APS employee who
holds or performs the duties of an Executive Level 1 or 2 position, or an
equivalent position; or
(b) a member or special member of the
Australian Federal Police;
as an inspector for the purposes of this Act.
(2) The Regulator must not appoint a person
as an inspector unless the Regulator is satisfied that the person has suitable
qualifications and experience to properly exercise the powers of an inspector.
(3) An inspector must, in exercising powers
as an inspector, comply with any directions of the Regulator.
(4) If a direction is given under subsection (3)
in writing, the direction is not a legislative instrument.
231
Identity cards
(1) The Regulator must issue an identity card
to an inspector.
Form of identity card
(2) The identity card must:
(a) be in the form approved, in
writing, by the Regulator; and
(b) contain a recent photograph of the
inspector.
Offence
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) the person has been issued with an
identity card; and
(b) the person ceases to be an
inspector; and
(c) the person does not, as soon as
practicable after so ceasing, return the identity card to the Regulator.
Penalty: 1 penalty unit.
(4) An offence against subsection (3) is
an offence of strict liability.
Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of
the Criminal Code.
Defence—card lost or destroyed
(5) Subsection (3) does not apply if the
identity card was lost or destroyed.
Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in
relation to the matter in this subsection: see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal
Code.
Inspector must carry card
(6) An inspector must carry his or her
identity card at all times when exercising powers as an inspector.
Division 3—Powers of inspectors
Subdivision A—Monitoring powers
232 Inspector
may enter premises by consent or under a warrant
(1) For the purpose of:
(a) determining whether this Act or
the associated provisions have been, or are being, complied with; or
(b) substantiating information
provided under this Act or the associated provisions;
an inspector may:
(c) enter any premises; and
(d) exercise the monitoring powers set
out in section 233.
(2) However, an inspector is not authorised
to enter the premises unless:
(a) the occupier of the premises has
consented to the entry and the inspector has shown his or her identity card if
required by the occupier; or
(b) the entry is made under a
monitoring warrant.
Note: If entry to the premises is with the occupier’s
consent, the inspector must leave the premises if the consent ceases to have
effect: see section 237.
233
Monitoring powers of inspectors
(1) The following are the monitoring
powers that an inspector may exercise in relation to premises under
section 232:
(a) the power to search the premises
and any thing on the premises;
(b) the power to examine any activity
conducted on the premises;
(c) the power to inspect, examine,
take measurements of or conduct tests on any thing on the premises;
(d) the power to make any still or
moving image or any recording of the premises or any thing on the premises;
(e) the power to inspect any document
on the premises;
(f) the power to take extracts from,
or make copies of, any such document;
(g) the power to take onto the
premises such equipment and materials as the inspector requires for the purpose
of exercising powers in relation to the premises;
(h) the powers set out in subsections (2),
(3) and (5).
Operating electronic equipment
(2) The monitoring powers include the power
to operate electronic equipment on the premises to see whether:
(a) the equipment; or
(b) a disk, tape or other storage
device that:
(i) is on the premises;
and
(ii) can be used with the
equipment or is associated with it;
contains information that is relevant to:
(c) determining whether this Act or
the associated provisions have been, or are being, complied with; or
(d) substantiating information
provided under this Act or the associated provisions.
(3) The monitoring powers include the
following powers in relation to information described in subsection (2)
found in the exercise of the power under that subsection:
(a) the power to operate electronic
equipment on the premises to put the information in documentary form and remove
the documents so produced from the premises;
(b) the power to operate electronic
equipment on the premises to transfer the information to a disk, tape or other
storage device that:
(i) is brought to the
premises for the exercise of the power; or
(ii) is on the premises and
the use of which for that purpose has been agreed in writing by the occupier of
the premises;
and remove the disk, tape or
other storage device from the premises.
(4) An inspector may operate electronic
equipment as mentioned in subsection (2) or (3) only if he or she believes
on reasonable grounds that the operation of the equipment can be carried out
without damage to the equipment.
Securing things if entry to premises is under a
monitoring warrant
(5) If entry to the premises is under a
monitoring warrant, the monitoring powers include the power to secure a thing
for a period not exceeding 24 hours if:
(a) the thing is found during the
exercise of monitoring powers on the premises; and
(b) an inspector believes on
reasonable grounds that:
(i) the thing affords
evidence of the commission of an offence against this Act or of an offence
against the Crimes Act 1914 or the Criminal Code that relates to
this Act; and
(ii) it is necessary to
secure the thing in order to prevent it from being concealed, lost or destroyed
before a warrant to seize the thing is obtained; and
(iii) the circumstances are
serious and urgent.
(6) If an inspector believes on reasonable
grounds that the thing needs to be secured for more than 24 hours, he or she
may apply to a magistrate for an extension of that period.
(7) The inspector must give notice to the
occupier of the premises, or another person who apparently represents the
occupier, of his or her intention to apply for an extension. The occupier or
other person is entitled to be heard in relation to that application.
(8) The provisions of this Part relating to
the issue of monitoring warrants apply, with such modifications as are
necessary, to the issue of an extension.
(9) The 24 hour period:
(a) may be extended more than once;
and
(b) must not be extended more than 3
times.
234
Persons assisting inspectors
Inspectors may be assisted by other persons
(1) An inspector may, in entering premises
under section 232 and in exercising monitoring powers in relation to the
premises, be assisted by other persons if that assistance is necessary and
reasonable. A person giving such assistance is a person assisting the
inspector.
Powers of a person assisting the inspector
(2) A person assisting the inspector may:
(a) enter the premises; and
(b) exercise monitoring powers in
relation to the premises, but only in accordance with a direction given to the
person by the inspector.
(3) A power exercised by a person assisting
the inspector as mentioned in subsection (2) is taken for all purposes to
have been exercised by the inspector.
(4) If a direction is given under paragraph (2)(b)
in writing, the direction is not a legislative instrument.
Subdivision B—Powers of inspectors to ask questions and seek production of
documents
235
Inspector may ask questions and seek production of documents
Entry with consent
(1) If an inspector is authorised to enter
premises because the occupier of the premises consented to the entry, the
inspector may ask the occupier to:
(a) answer any questions relating to
the operation of:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the associated
provisions;
that are put by the inspector;
and
(b) produce any document relating to
the operation of:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the associated
provisions;
that is requested by the
inspector.
Entry under a monitoring warrant
(2) If an inspector is authorised to enter
premises by a monitoring warrant, the inspector may require any person on the
premises to:
(a) answer any questions relating to
the operation of:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the associated
provisions;
that are put by the inspector;
and
(b) produce any document relating to
the operation of:
(i) this Act; or
(ii) the associated
provisions;
that is requested by the
inspector.
Offence
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) the person is subject to a
requirement under subsection (2); and
(b) the person fails to comply with
the requirement.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 6 months or 30 penalty units, or
both.
236
Self‑incrimination
(1) A person is not excused from giving an
answer or producing a document under section 235 on the ground that the
answer or the production of the document might tend to incriminate the person
or expose the person to a penalty.
(2) However, in the case of an individual:
(a) the answer given or the
document produced; or
(b) giving the answer or producing the
document; or
(c) any information, document or thing
obtained as a direct or indirect consequence of giving the answer or producing
the document;
is not admissible in evidence against the individual:
(d) in civil proceedings for the recovery
of a penalty (other than proceedings for the recovery of a penalty under
section 135, 212 or 213); or
(e) in criminal proceedings (other
than proceedings for an offence against section 137.1 or 137.2 of the Criminal
Code that relates to this Part).
Division 4—Obligations and incidental powers of inspectors
237
Consent
(1) An inspector must, before obtaining the
consent of an occupier of premises for the purposes of paragraph 232(2)(a),
inform the occupier that the occupier may refuse consent.
(2) A consent has no effect unless the
consent is voluntary.
(3) A consent may be expressed to be limited
to entry during a particular period. If so, the consent has effect for that
period unless the consent is withdrawn before the end of that period.
(4) A consent that is not limited as
mentioned in subsection (3) has effect until the consent is withdrawn.
(5) If an inspector entered premises because
of the consent of the occupier of the premises, the inspector, and any person
assisting the inspector, must leave the premises if the consent ceases to have
effect.
238
Announcement before entry under warrant
An inspector must, before entering
premises under a monitoring warrant:
(a) announce that he or she is
authorised to enter the premises; and
(b) show his or her identity card to
the occupier of the premises, or to another person who apparently represents
the occupier, if the occupier or other person is present at the premises; and
(c) give any person at the premises an
opportunity to allow entry to the premises.
239
Inspector to be in possession of warrant
If a monitoring warrant is being
executed in relation to premises, an inspector executing the warrant must be in
possession of the warrant or a copy of the warrant.
240
Details of warrant etc. to be given to occupier
If:
(a) a monitoring warrant is being
executed in relation to premises; and
(b) the occupier of the premises, or
another person who apparently represents the occupier, is present at the
premises;
an inspector executing the warrant must, as soon as
practicable:
(c) make a copy of the warrant
available to the occupier or other person (which need not include the signature
of the magistrate who issued it); and
(d) inform the occupier or other
person of the rights and responsibilities of the occupier or other person under
Division 5.
241
Expert assistance to operate electronic equipment
(1) This section applies to premises to which
a monitoring warrant relates.
Securing equipment
(2) If an inspector believes on reasonable
grounds that:
(a) there is on the premises information
that is relevant to:
(i) determining whether
this Act or the associated provisions have been, or are being, complied with;
or
(ii) substantiating
information provided under this Act or the associated provisions;
and that may be accessible by
operating electronic equipment on the premises; and
(b) expert assistance is required to
operate the equipment; and
(c) if he or she does not take action
under this subsection, the information may be destroyed, altered or otherwise
interfered with;
he or she may do whatever is necessary to secure the
equipment, whether by locking it up, placing a guard or other means.
(3) The inspector must give notice to the
occupier of the premises, or another person who apparently represents the
occupier, of his or her intention to secure the equipment and of the fact that
the equipment may be secured for up to 24 hours.
Period equipment may be secured
(4) The equipment may be secured:
(a) until the 24 hour period ends; or
(b) until the equipment has been
operated by the expert;
whichever happens first.
Extensions
(5) If an inspector believes on reasonable
grounds that the equipment needs to be secured for more than 24 hours, he or
she may apply to a magistrate for an extension of that period.
(6) The inspector must give notice to the
occupier of the premises, or another person who apparently represents the
occupier, of his or her intention to apply for an extension. The occupier or
other person is entitled to be heard in relation to that application.
(7) The provisions of this Part relating to
the issue of monitoring warrants apply, with such modifications as are
necessary, to the issue of an extension.
(8) The 24 hour period:
(a) may be extended more than once;
and
(b) must not be extended more than 3
times.
242
Compensation for damage to electronic equipment
(1) This section applies if:
(a) as a result of electronic
equipment being operated as mentioned in this Part:
(i) damage is caused to
the equipment; or
(ii) the data recorded on
the equipment is damaged; or
(iii) programs associated
with the use of the equipment, or with the use of the data, are damaged or
corrupted; and
(b) the damage or corruption occurs
because:
(i) insufficient care was
exercised in selecting the person who was to operate the equipment; or
(ii) insufficient care was
exercised by the person operating the equipment.
(2) The Commonwealth must pay the owner of
the equipment, or the user of the data or programs, such reasonable
compensation for the damage or corruption as the Commonwealth and the owner or
user agree on.
(3) However, if the owner or user and the
Commonwealth fail to agree, the owner or user may institute proceedings in a Court
for such reasonable amount of compensation as the Court determines.
(4) In determining the amount of compensation
payable, regard is to be had to whether the occupier of the premises, or the
occupier’s employees and agents, if they were available at the time, provided
any appropriate warning or guidance on the operation of the equipment.
(5) In this section:
Court means:
(a) the Federal Court; or
(b) a court of a State or Territory
that has jurisdiction in relation to matters arising under this Act.
damage, in relation to data, includes damage
by erasure of data or addition of other data.
Division 5—Occupier’s rights and responsibilities
243
Occupier entitled to observe execution of warrant
(1) If:
(a) a monitoring warrant is being
executed in relation to premises; and
(b) the occupier of the premises, or
another person who apparently represents the occupier, is present at the
premises;
the occupier or other person is entitled to observe the
execution of the warrant.
(2) The right to observe the execution of the
warrant ceases if the occupier or other person impedes that execution.
(3) This section does not prevent the
execution of the warrant in 2 or more areas of the premises at the same time.
244
Occupier to provide inspector with facilities and assistance
(1) The occupier of premises to which a monitoring
warrant relates, or another person who apparently represents the occupier, must
provide:
(a) an inspector executing the
warrant; and
(b) any person assisting the
inspector;
with all reasonable facilities and assistance for the
effective exercise of their powers.
(2) A person commits an offence if:
(a) the person is subject to subsection (1);
and
(b) the person fails to comply with
that subsection.
Penalty: 30 penalty units.
Division 6—Monitoring warrants
245
Monitoring warrants
Application for warrant
(1) An inspector may apply to a magistrate
for a warrant under this section in relation to premises.
Issue of warrant
(2) The magistrate may issue the warrant if
the magistrate is satisfied, by information on oath or affirmation, that it is reasonably
necessary that one or more inspectors should have access to the premises for
the purpose of:
(a) determining whether this Act or
the associated provisions have been, or are being, complied with; or
(b) substantiating information
provided under this Act or the associated provisions.
(3) However, the magistrate must not issue
the warrant unless the inspector or some other person has given to the
magistrate, either orally or by affidavit, such further information (if any) as
the magistrate requires concerning the grounds on which the issue of the
warrant is being sought.
Content of warrant
(4) The warrant must:
(a) describe the premises to which the
warrant relates; and
(b) state that the warrant is issued
under this section; and
(c) state that the warrant is issued
for the purpose of:
(i) determining whether
this Act or the associated provisions have been, or are being, complied with;
or
(ii) substantiating
information provided under this Act or the associated provisions; and
(d) authorise one or more inspectors
(whether or not named in the warrant) from time to time while the warrant
remains in force:
(i) to enter the premises;
and
(ii) to exercise the powers
set out in Divisions 3 and 4 in relation to the premises; and
(e) state whether the entry is
authorised to be made at any time of the day or during specified hours of the
day; and
(f) specify the day (not more than 6
months after the issue of the warrant) on which the warrant ceases to be in
force.
Division 7—Powers of magistrates
246
Powers of magistrates
Powers conferred personally
(1) A power conferred on a magistrate by this
Part is conferred on the magistrate:
(a) in a personal capacity; and
(b) not as a court or a member of a
court.
Powers need not be accepted
(2) The magistrate need not accept the power
conferred.
Protection and immunity
(3) A magistrate exercising a power conferred
by this Part has the same protection and immunity as if he or she were
exercising the power:
(a) as the court of which the
magistrate is a member; or
(b) as a member of the court of which
the magistrate is a member.
Part 16—Liability of executive officers of bodies corporate
247
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• If a body corporate
contravenes a civil penalty provision, an executive officer of the body
corporate will contravene a civil penalty provision in certain circumstances.
248
Civil penalties for executive officers of bodies corporate
(1) If:
(a) a body corporate contravenes a
civil penalty provision; and
(b) an executive officer of the body
corporate knew that, or was reckless or negligent as to whether, the
contravention would occur; and
(c) the officer was in a position to
influence the conduct of the body corporate in relation to the contravention;
and
(d) the
officer failed to take all reasonable steps to prevent the contravention;
the officer contravenes this subsection.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
the officer is reckless as to whether the contravention would
occur if:
(a) the officer is aware of a
substantial risk that the contravention would occur; and
(b) having regard to the circumstances
known to the officer, it is unjustifiable to take the risk.
(3) For the purposes of subsection (1),
the officer is negligent as to whether the contravention would
occur if the officer’s conduct involves:
(a) such a great falling short of the
standard of care that a reasonable person would exercise in the circumstances;
and
(b) such a high risk that the
contravention would occur;
that the conduct merits the imposition of a pecuniary
penalty.
Civil penalty provision
(4) Subsection (1) is a civil penalty
provision.
Note: Part 17 provides for pecuniary penalties
for breaches of civil penalty provisions.
249
Reasonable steps to prevent contravention
(1) For the purposes of section 248, in
determining whether an executive officer of a body corporate failed to take all
reasonable steps to prevent a contravention, a court may have regard to all
relevant matters, including:
(a) what action (if any) the officer
took directed towards ensuring the following (to the extent that the action is
relevant to the contravention):
(i) that the body
corporate arranges regular professional assessments of the body corporate’s
compliance with civil penalty provisions;
(ii) that the body
corporate implements any appropriate recommendations arising from such an
assessment;
(iii) that the body
corporate’s employees, agents and contractors have a reasonable knowledge and
understanding of the requirements to comply with civil penalty provisions in so
far as those requirements affect the employees, agents or contractors
concerned; and
(b) what action (if any) the officer
took when he or she became aware of the contravention.
(2) This section does not limit section 248.
Part 17—Civil penalty orders
250
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• Pecuniary penalties are
payable for contraventions of civil penalty provisions.
251
References to Court
In this Part:
Court means:
(a) the Federal Court; or
(b) a court of a State or Territory
that has jurisdiction in relation to matters arising under this Act.
252
Civil penalty orders
(1) If a Court is satisfied that a person has
contravened a civil penalty provision, the Court may order the person to pay
the Commonwealth a pecuniary penalty.
(2) An order under subsection (1) is to
be known as a civil penalty order.
Determining amount of pecuniary penalty
(3) In determining the pecuniary penalty, the
Court may have regard to all relevant matters, including:
(a) the nature and extent of the
contravention; and
(b) the nature and extent of any loss
or damage suffered as a result of the contravention; and
(c) the circumstances in which the
contravention took place; and
(d) whether the person has previously
been found by a court in proceedings under this Act to have engaged in any
similar conduct; and
(e) the extent to which the person has
co‑operated with the authorities; and
(f) if the person is a body
corporate:
(i) the level of the
employees, officers or agents of the body corporate involved in the
contravention; and
(ii) whether the body
corporate exercised due diligence to avoid the contravention; and
(iii) whether the body
corporate had a corporate culture conducive to compliance.
(4) The pecuniary penalty payable under subsection (1)
by a body corporate must not exceed:
(a) in the case of a contravention of
subsection 64(1) or (2)—the amount worked out under subsection (5); or
(b) in the case of a contravention of
subsection 47(1) or (2) or 64(3) or (4)—500 penalty units for each
contravention; or
(c) otherwise—10,000 penalty units for
each contravention.
(5) For the purposes of paragraph (4)(a),
the amount is whichever is the greater of the following amounts:
(a) if the court can determine the
total value of the benefits that:
(i) have been obtained by
one or more persons; and
(ii) are reasonably
attributable to the contravention;
3 times that total value;
(b) in any case—10,000 penalty units.
(6) The pecuniary penalty payable under subsection (1)
by a person other than a body corporate must not exceed:
(a) in the case of a contravention of
subsection 47(1) or (2) or 64(3) or (4)—100 penalty units for each
contravention; or
(b) otherwise—2,000 penalty units for
each contravention.
Civil enforcement of penalty
(7) A pecuniary penalty is a civil debt
payable to the Commonwealth. The Commonwealth may enforce the civil penalty
order as if it were an order made in civil proceedings against the person to recover
a debt due by the person. The debt arising from the order is taken to be a judgement
debt.
253
Who may apply for a civil penalty order
(1) Only the Regulator may apply for a civil
penalty order.
(2) Subsection (1) does not exclude the
operation of the Director of Public Prosecutions Act 1983.
254 Two
or more proceedings may be heard together
The Court may direct that 2 or more
proceedings for civil penalty orders are to be heard together.
255
Time limit for application for an order
Proceedings for a civil penalty order
may be started no later than 6 years after the contravention.
256
Civil evidence and procedure rules for civil penalty orders
The Court must apply the rules of
evidence and procedure for civil matters when hearing proceedings for a civil
penalty order.
257
Civil proceedings after criminal proceedings
The Court must not make a civil penalty
order against a person for a contravention of a civil penalty provision if the
person has been convicted of an offence constituted by conduct that is
substantially the same as the conduct constituting the contravention.
258
Criminal proceedings during civil proceedings
(1) Proceedings for a civil penalty order
against a person for a contravention of a civil penalty provision are stayed
if:
(a) criminal proceedings are started
or have already been started against the person for an offence; and
(b) the offence is constituted by
conduct that is substantially the same as the conduct alleged to constitute
the contravention.
(2) The proceedings for the order may be
resumed if the person is not convicted of the offence. Otherwise, the
proceedings for the order are dismissed.
259
Criminal proceedings after civil proceedings
Criminal proceedings may be started
against a person for conduct that is substantially the same as conduct
constituting a contravention of a civil penalty provision regardless of whether
a civil penalty order has been made against the person.
260
Evidence given in proceedings for a civil penalty order not admissible in criminal
proceedings
Evidence of information given, or
evidence of production of documents, by an individual is not admissible in
criminal proceedings against the individual if:
(a) the individual previously gave the
evidence or produced the documents in proceedings for a civil penalty order
against the individual for a contravention of a civil penalty provision
(whether or not the order was made); and
(b) the conduct alleged to constitute
the offence is substantially the same as the conduct that was claimed to
constitute the contravention.
However, this does not apply to a criminal proceeding in
respect of the falsity of the evidence given by the individual in the
proceedings for the civil penalty order.
261
Mistake of fact
(1) A person is not liable to have a civil
penalty order made against the person for a contravention of a civil penalty
provision if:
(a) at or before the time of the
conduct constituting the contravention, the person:
(i) considered whether or
not facts existed; and
(ii) was under a mistaken
but reasonable belief about those facts; and
(b) had those facts existed, the
conduct would not have constituted a contravention of the civil penalty
provision.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
a person may be regarded as having considered whether or not facts existed if:
(a) the person had considered, on a
previous occasion, whether those facts existed in the circumstances surrounding
that occasion; and
(b) the person honestly and reasonably
believed that the circumstances surrounding the present occasion were the same,
or substantially the same, as those surrounding the previous occasion.
(3) A person who wishes to rely on subsection (1)
or (2) in proceedings for a civil penalty order bears an evidential burden in
relation to that matter.
262
State of mind
Scope
(1) This section applies to proceedings for a
civil penalty order against a person for a contravention of any of the
following civil penalty provisions:
(a) subsection 47(1);
(b) subsection 47(2);
(c) subsection 55B(1);
(d) subsection 55B(2);
(e) subsection 57(2);
(f) subsection 58(2);
(g) subsection 59(3);
(h) subsection 59(4);
(i) subsection 60(3);
(j) subsection 60(4);
(k) subsection 63(1);
(l) subsection 64(1);
(m) subsection 64(3);
(n) subsection 66(1);
(o) subsection 66(2);
(p) subsection 66(3);
(q) subsection 66(4);
(r) subsection 71A(1);
(s) subsection 151(1);
(t) subsection 151(2);
(u) subsection 218(2);
(v) subsection 219(2);
(w) subsection 221(4);
(x) subsection 227(2);
(y) subsection 228(2);
(z) subsection 228(3).
State of mind
(2) In the proceedings, it is not necessary
to prove:
(a) the person’s intention; or
(b) the person’s knowledge; or
(c) the person’s recklessness; or
(d) the person’s negligence; or
(e) any other state of mind of the
person.
(3) Subsection (2) does not affect the
operation of section 261.
263
Continuing contraventions
(1) If an act or thing is required, under a
civil penalty provision, to be done within a particular period, or before a
particular time, then the obligation to do that act or thing continues (even if
the period has expired or the time has passed) until the act or thing is done.
(2) A person who contravenes any of the
following civil penalty provisions:
(a) subsection 47(1);
(b) subsection 47(2);
(c) subsection 66(1);
(d) subsection 66(2);
(e) subsection 66(3);
(f) subsection 66(4);
(g) subsection 71A(1);
(h) subsection 151(1);
(i) subsection 218(2);
(j) subsection 219(2);
(k) subsection 221(4);
commits a separate contravention of that provision in
respect of each day (including a day of the making of a relevant civil penalty
order or any subsequent day) during which the contravention continues.
(3) The pecuniary penalty payable under
subsection 252(1) for such a separate contravention in respect of a particular
day must not exceed:
(a) in the case of a contravention of
subsection 221(4)—10% of the maximum pecuniary penalty that could have been
imposed for the contravention if subsection (2) of this section had not
been enacted; or
(b) otherwise—5% of the maximum
pecuniary penalty that could have been imposed for the contravention if subsection (2)
of this section had not been enacted.
Part 18—Infringement notices
264
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• This Part sets up a system
of infringement notices for contraventions of a civil penalty provision as an
alternative to the institution of court proceedings.
265
When an infringement notice can be given
(1) If the Regulator has reasonable grounds
to believe that a person has contravened a civil penalty provision, the
Regulator may give the person an infringement notice relating to the
contravention.
(2) The infringement notice must be given
within 12 months after the day on which the contravention is alleged to have
taken place.
266
Matters to be included in an infringement notice
An infringement notice must:
(a) set out the name of the person to
whom the notice is given; and
(b) set out the name of the person who
gave the notice; and
(c) set out brief details relating to
the alleged contravention of a civil penalty provision, including the date of
the alleged contravention; and
(d) contain a statement to the effect
that proceedings will not be brought in relation to the alleged contravention
if the penalty specified in the notice is paid to the Regulator, on behalf of
the Commonwealth, within:
(i) 28 days after the
notice is given; or
(ii) if the Regulator
allows a longer period—that longer period; and
(e) give an explanation of how payment
of the penalty is to be made; and
(f) set out the effect of section 268;
and
(g) set out such other matters (if
any) as are specified in the regulations.
267
Amount of penalty
The penalty to be specified in an
infringement notice given to a person must be a pecuniary penalty equal to one‑fifth
of the maximum penalty for contravening the civil penalty provision to which
the notice relates.
268
Withdrawal of an infringement notice
(1) This section applies if an infringement
notice is given to a person.
(2) The Regulator may, by written notice (the
withdrawal notice) given to the person, withdraw the infringement
notice.
(3) To be effective, the withdrawal notice
must be given to the person within 28 days after the infringement notice was
given.
Refund of penalty if infringement notice withdrawn
(4) If:
(a) the penalty specified in the
infringement notice is paid; and
(b) the infringement notice is
withdrawn after the penalty is paid;
the Commonwealth is liable to refund the penalty.
269 What
happens if the penalty is paid
(1) This section applies if:
(a) an infringement notice relating to
an alleged contravention of a civil penalty provision is given to a person; and
(b) the penalty is paid in accordance
with the infringement notice; and
(c) the infringement notice is not
withdrawn.
(2) Any liability of the person for the
alleged contravention is discharged.
(3) Proceedings may not be brought against
the person for the alleged contravention.
270
Effect of this Part on civil penalty proceedings
This Part does not:
(a) require an infringement notice to
be given in relation to an alleged contravention of a civil penalty provision;
or
(b) affect the liability of a person
to have proceedings brought against the person for an alleged contravention of
a civil penalty provision if:
(i) the person does not
comply with an infringement notice relating to the contravention; or
(ii) an infringement notice
relating to the contravention is not given to the person; or
(iii) an infringement notice
relating to the contravention is given to the person and subsequently
withdrawn; or
(c) limit a court’s discretion to
determine the amount of a penalty to be imposed on a person who is found in
proceedings to have contravened a civil penalty provision.
271
Regulations
The regulations may make further
provision in relation to infringement notices.
Part 19—Offences relating to unit shortfall charge and administrative
penalties
Division 1—Introduction
272
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• A person must not enter
into a scheme:
(a) with the
intention, knowledge or belief that the scheme will secure or achieve the
result that a body corporate or trust will be unable to pay an amount of unit
shortfall charge payable by the body corporate or trust; or
(b) if it would
be reasonable to conclude that the person entered into the scheme for the sole
or dominant purpose of securing or achieving the result that a body corporate
or trust will be unable to pay an amount of unit shortfall charge payable by
the body corporate or trust.
• A person must not enter
into a scheme:
(a) with the
intention, knowledge or belief that the scheme will secure or achieve the
result that a body corporate or trust will be unable to pay an administrative
penalty payable under this Act; or
(b) if it would
be reasonable to conclude that the person entered into the scheme for the sole
or dominant purpose of securing or achieving the result that a body corporate
or trust will be unable to pay an administrative penalty payable under this
Act.
Division 2—Offences relating to unit shortfall charge
273
Scheme to avoid existing liability to pay unit shortfall charge
Intention
(1) A person commits an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) at or after the time when the unit
shortfall charge became due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the intention of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for
a limited period, that the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (1);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Knowledge or belief
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) at or after the time when the unit
shortfall charge became due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the knowledge or belief that the scheme will, or will be likely to, secure
or achieve the result, either generally or for a limited period, that the body
corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(4) For the purposes of subsection (3),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (3);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Objective purpose
(5) A person (the first person) commits
an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) at or after the time when the unit
shortfall charge became due and payable, the first person entered into a
scheme; and
(c) having regard to:
(i) the manner in which
the scheme was entered into; and
(ii) the form and substance
of the scheme, including any legal rights and obligations involved in the
scheme and the economic and commercial substance of the scheme; and
(iii) the timing of the
scheme;
it would be reasonable to
conclude that the first person entered into the scheme for the sole or dominant
purpose of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for a limited
period, that the body corporate or trust:
(iv) will be unable; or
(v) will be likely to be
unable; or
(vi) will continue to be
unable; or
(vii) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 3 years or 850 penalty units, or
both.
(6) For the purposes of subsection (5),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the first person; or
(b) a party to the scheme.
274
Scheme to avoid future liability to pay unit shortfall charge
Intention
(1) A person commits an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) before the unit shortfall charge became
due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the intention of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for
a limited period, that, in the event that the body corporate or trust were to
become liable to pay the unit shortfall charge, the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (1);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Knowledge or belief
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) before the unit shortfall charge became
due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the knowledge or belief that the scheme will, or will be likely to, secure
or achieve the result, either generally or for a limited period, that, in the
event that the body corporate or trust were to become liable to pay the unit
shortfall charge, the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(4) For the purposes of subsection (3),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (3);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Objective purpose
(5) A person (the first person)
commits an offence if:
(a) an amount of unit shortfall charge
is payable by a body corporate or trust; and
(b) before the unit shortfall charge
became due and payable, the first person entered into a scheme; and
(c) having regard to:
(i) the manner in which
the scheme was entered into; and
(ii) the form and substance
of the scheme, including any legal rights and obligations involved in the
scheme and the economic and commercial substance of the scheme; and
(iii) the timing of the
scheme;
it would be reasonable to
conclude that the first person entered into the scheme for the sole or dominant
purpose of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for a limited
period, that, in the event that the body corporate or trust were to become
liable to pay the unit shortfall charge, the body corporate or trust:
(iv) will be unable; or
(v) will be likely to be
unable; or
(vi) will continue to be
unable; or
(vii) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
to pay the unit shortfall charge.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 3 years or 850 penalty units, or
both.
(6) For the purposes of subsection (5),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the first person; or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Division 3—Offences relating to administrative penalties
275
Scheme to avoid existing liability to pay administrative penalty
Intention
(1) A person commits an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) at or after the time when the
penalty became due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the intention of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for
a limited period, that the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (1);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Knowledge or belief
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) at or after the time when the
penalty became due and payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the knowledge or belief that the scheme will, or will be likely to, secure
or achieve the result, either generally or for a limited period, that the body
corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(4) For the purposes of subsection (3),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (3);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Objective purpose
(5) A person (the first person) commits
an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) at or after the time when the
penalty became due and payable, the first person entered into a scheme; and
(c) having regard to:
(i) the manner in which
the scheme was entered into; and
(ii) the form and substance
of the scheme, including any legal rights and obligations involved in the
scheme and the economic and commercial substance of the scheme; and
(iii) the timing of the
scheme;
it would be reasonable to
conclude that the first person entered into the scheme for the sole or dominant
purpose of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for a limited
period, that the body corporate or trust:
(iv) will be unable; or
(v) will be likely to be
unable; or
(vi) will continue to be
unable; or
(vii) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 3 years or 850 penalty units, or
both.
(6) For the purposes of subsection (5),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the first person; or
(b) a party to the scheme.
276
Scheme to avoid future liability to pay administrative penalty
Intention
(1) A person commits an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) before the penalty became due and
payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the intention of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for
a limited period, that, in the event that the body corporate or trust were to
become liable to pay the penalty, the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(2) For the purposes of subsection (1),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (1);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Knowledge or belief
(3) A person commits an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) before the penalty became due and
payable, the person entered into a scheme; and
(c) the person entered into the scheme
with the knowledge or belief that the scheme will, or will be likely to, secure
or achieve the result, either generally or for a limited period, that, in the
event that the body corporate or trust were to become liable to pay the
penalty, the body corporate or trust:
(i) will be unable; or
(ii) will be likely to be
unable; or
(iii) will continue to be
unable; or
(iv) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
having regard to the other debts
of the body corporate or trust, to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 10 years or 10,000 penalty units,
or both.
(4) For the purposes of subsection (3),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the person mentioned in subsection (3);
or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Objective purpose
(5) A person (the first person)
commits an offence if:
(a) a penalty is due and payable by a
body corporate or trust under section 212; and
(b) before the penalty became due and
payable, the first person entered into a scheme; and
(c) having regard to:
(i) the manner in which
the scheme was entered into; and
(ii) the form and substance
of the scheme, including any legal rights and obligations involved in the
scheme and the economic and commercial substance of the scheme; and
(iii) the timing of the
scheme;
it would be reasonable to
conclude that the first person entered into the scheme for the sole or dominant
purpose of securing or achieving the result, either generally or for a limited
period, that, in the event that the body corporate or trust were to become
liable to pay the penalty, the body corporate or trust:
(iv) will be unable; or
(v) will be likely to be
unable; or
(vi) will continue to be
unable; or
(vii) will be likely to
continue to be unable;
to pay the penalty.
Penalty: Imprisonment for 3 years or 850 penalty units, or
both.
(6) For the purposes of subsection (5),
it is immaterial whether the body corporate or the trustee of the trust is:
(a) the first person; or
(b) a party to the scheme.
Part 20—Enforceable undertakings
277
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• A person may give the Regulator
an enforceable undertaking about compliance with this Act or the associated
provisions.
278
Acceptance of undertakings
(1) The Regulator may accept any of the
following undertakings:
(a) a written undertaking given by a
person that the person will, in order to comply with this Act or the associated
provisions, take specified action;
(b) a written undertaking given by a person
that the person will, in order to comply with this Act or the associated
provisions, refrain from taking specified action;
(c) a written undertaking given by a
person that the person will take specified action directed towards ensuring
that the person does not contravene this Act or the associated provisions, or
is unlikely to contravene this Act or the associated provisions, in the future.
(2) The undertaking must be expressed to be
an undertaking under this section.
(3) The person may withdraw or vary the
undertaking at any time, but only with the consent of the Regulator.
(4) The Regulator may, by written notice
given to the person, cancel the undertaking.
(5) The Regulator must publish the
undertaking on the Regulator’s website.
279
Enforcement of undertakings
(1) If:
(a) a person has given an undertaking
under section 278; and
(b) the undertaking has not been
withdrawn or cancelled; and
(c) the Regulator considers that the
person has breached the undertaking;
the Regulator may apply to a Court for an order under subsection (2)
of this section.
(2) If the Court is satisfied that the person
has breached the undertaking, the Court may make any or all of the following
orders:
(a) an order directing the person to
comply with the undertaking;
(b) an order directing the person to
pay to the Regulator, on behalf of the Commonwealth, an amount up to the amount
of any financial benefit that the person has obtained directly or indirectly
and that is reasonably attributable to the breach;
(c) any order that the Court considers
appropriate directing the person to compensate any other person who has
suffered loss or damage as a result of the breach;
(d) any other order that the Court
considers appropriate.
(3) In this section:
Court means:
(a) the Federal Court; or
(b) a court of a State or Territory
that has jurisdiction in relation to matters arising under this Act.
Part 21—Review of decisions
280
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• Certain decisions of
delegates of the Regulator may be reviewed by the Administrative Appeals
Tribunal following a process of internal reconsideration by the Regulator.
• Certain decisions of the Regulator
may be reviewed by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal.
281
Reviewable decisions
For the purposes of this Act, each of
the following decisions of the Regulator is a reviewable decision:
|
Reviewable decisions
|
|
Item
|
Decision
|
|
1
|
A decision to make a determination under paragraph (b)
of the definition of nameplate rating in section 5.
|
|
2
|
A decision to make a determination under subsection 29(3).
|
|
3
|
A decision to refuse to issue an OTN under section 40.
|
|
4
|
A decision to refuse to give consent to the surrender of
an OTN under section 42.
|
|
5
|
A decision to cancel an OTN under section 43.
|
|
6
|
A decision to refuse to declare that a person is an
approved person for the purposes of the application of subsection 56(2) in
relation to an eligible financial year.
|
|
7
|
A decision to refuse to make a declaration under section 70.
|
|
8
|
A decision under subsection 72(3) to revoke a declaration
under section 70.
|
|
9
|
A decision to make a determination under subsection 76(2).
|
|
10
|
A decision to make a determination under subsection 77(1).
|
|
11
|
A decision to refuse to issue a liability transfer
certificate under section 83 or 87.
|
|
12
|
A decision to refuse to give consent to the surrender of a
liability transfer certificate under section 89.
|
|
13
|
A decision to cancel a liability transfer certificate
under section 90.
|
|
14
|
A prescribed decision under the Opt‑in Scheme.
|
|
15
|
A decision under subsection 106(6) to refuse to extend a
period.
|
|
16
|
A decision to refuse to make an entry in a Registry
account under section 109.
|
|
17
|
A prescribed decision under a subsection 113(1)
determination.
|
|
18
|
A decision to make an assessment under section 119.
|
|
19
|
A decision under subsection 119(4) to amend an assessment
under section 119.
|
|
20
|
A decision under subsection 119(4) to refuse to amend an
assessment under section 119.
|
|
21
|
A decision to make an assessment under section 120.
|
|
22
|
A decision under subsection 120(4) to amend an assessment
under section 120.
|
|
23
|
A decision under subsection 120(4) to refuse to amend an
assessment under section 120.
|
|
24
|
A decision to refuse to remit the whole or a part of an
amount under subsection 130(2).
|
|
25
|
A decision to refuse to remit a part of an amount under
subsection 134A(2).
|
|
26
|
A decision to refuse to remit the whole or a part of an
amount under subsection 135(2).
|
|
27
|
A decision to make an assessment under section 141.
|
|
28
|
A decision under subsection 141(3) to amend an assessment
under section 141.
|
|
29
|
A decision under subsection 141(3) to refuse to amend an
assessment under section 141.
|
|
30
|
A prescribed decision under the Jobs and Competitiveness
Program.
|
|
31
|
A decision to refuse to issue a certificate of eligibility
for coal‑fired generation assistance under section 165.
|
|
32
|
A decision under subsection 165(3) to state that a
specified number is the annual assistance factor in respect of a generation
complex.
|
|
33
|
A decision to make a determination under paragraph
171(7)(b).
|
|
34
|
A decision under section 184 to refuse to remove an
entry for a person in the Information Database.
|
|
35
|
A decision to refuse to remit the whole or a part of an
amount under subsection 213(2).
|
282
Applications for reconsideration of decisions made by delegates of the Regulator
Scope
(1) This section applies to a reviewable
decision if the decision is made by a delegate of the Regulator.
Application
(2) A person affected by a reviewable
decision who is dissatisfied with the decision may apply to the Regulator for
the Regulator to reconsider the decision.
(3) The application must:
(a) be in a form approved in writing
by the Regulator; and
(b) set out the reasons for the
application; and
(c) be accompanied by the fee (if any)
specified in a legislative instrument made by the Regulator.
(4) The application must be made within:
(a) 28 days after the applicant is
informed of the decision; or
(b) if, either before or after the end
of that period of 28 days, the Regulator extends the period within which the
application may be made—the extended period.
(5) An approved form of an application may
provide for verification by statutory declaration of statements in
applications.
(6) A fee specified under paragraph (3)(c)
must not be such as to amount to taxation.
283
Reconsideration by the Regulator
(1) Upon receiving such an application, the Regulator
must:
(a) reconsider the decision; and
(b) affirm, vary or revoke the
decision.
(2) The Regulator’s decision on reconsideration
of a decision has effect as if it had been made under the provision under which
the original decision was made.
(3) The Regulator must give to the applicant
a written notice stating its decision on the reconsideration.
(4) Within 28 days after making its decision
on the reconsideration, the Regulator must give the applicant a written
statement of its reasons for its decision.
284
Deadline for reconsideration
(1) The Regulator must make its decision on
reconsideration of a decision within 90 days after receiving an application for
reconsideration.
(2) The Regulator is taken, for the purposes
of this Part, to have made a decision affirming the original decision if it has
not informed the applicant of its decision on the reconsideration before the
end of the period of 90 days.
285
Review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal
(1) Applications may be made to the
Administrative Appeals Tribunal to review a reviewable decision if the Regulator
has affirmed or varied the decision under section 283.
(2) Applications may be made to the
Administrative Appeals Tribunal to review a reviewable decision if the decision
was not made by a delegate of the Regulator.
286
Stay of proceedings for the recovery of unit shortfall charge or late payment
penalty
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) proceedings for the recovery of either
of the following amounts are before a court:
(i) an amount of unit
shortfall charge;
(ii) an amount under
section 135; and
(b) in the proceedings, it is alleged
that a person had a unit shortfall for an eligible financial year; and
(c) the Regulator has made an
assessment under section 141 of the unit shortfall; and
(d) any of the following subparagraphs
applies:
(i) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment is being reconsidered by the Regulator
under section 283;
(ii) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment has been affirmed or varied by the
Regulator under section 283, and the decision as so affirmed or varied is
the subject of an application for review by the Administrative Appeals
Tribunal;
(iii) a decision to make, to
amend, or to refuse to amend, the assessment is the subject of an application
for review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal.
Stay of proceedings
(2) The court may stay the proceedings until:
(a) if subparagraph (1)(d)(i)
applies—the Regulator notifies the applicant for reconsideration of the Regulator’s
decision on the reconsideration; or
(b) if subparagraph (1)(d)(ii) or
(iii) applies—the review by the Administrative Appeals Tribunal (including any
court proceedings arising out of the review) has been finalised.
(3) This section does not limit the power of:
(a) a court; or
(b) a Judge; or
(c) a magistrate;
under any other law to order a stay of proceedings.
Part 22—Reviews by the Climate Change Authority
Division 1—Simplified outline
287
Simplified outline
The following is a simplified outline of
this Part:
• The Climate Change
Authority must conduct periodic reviews of:
(a) this Act and
the associated provisions; and
(b) the level of carbon
pollution caps; and
(c) any
indicative national emissions trajectory and national carbon budget; and
(d) progress in
achieving Australia’s emission reduction targets and any national carbon budget.
• In addition to periodic
reviews, the Climate Change Authority is to conduct a review of matters
relating to this Act and the associated provisions if requested to do so by:
(a) the
Minister; or
(b) both Houses
of the Parliament.
Division 2—Periodic reviews of this Act and the associated provisions
288
Periodic reviews of this Act and the associated provisions to be conducted by
the Climate Change Authority
(1) Reviews of the following matters are to
be conducted by the Climate Change Authority:
(a) the effectiveness and efficiency
of this Act and the associated provisions, including:
(i) the effectiveness of
reporting requirements imposed on liable entities; and
(ii) the effectiveness of
the coverage of emissions, and potential emissions, of greenhouse gases; and
(iii) administrative costs
incurred by liable entities in complying with this Act and the associated
provisions; and
(iv) administrative costs
incurred by liable entities in surrendering units to avoid being liable to pay
unit shortfall charge;
(b) whether there should be any changes
to Australia’s medium‑term and long‑term targets and carbon budget for reducing
net greenhouse gas emissions;
(c) the process that should apply to
the setting of carbon pollution caps;
(d) policies and procedures that
should apply to the auctioning of carbon units;
(e) the provisions that should apply
in relation to the issue of carbon units for a fixed charge (to act as a cap);
(f) the provisions that should apply
in relation to minimum reserve charges for the issue of carbon units as a
result of an auction (to act as a floor);
(g) the provisions that should apply
in relation to charges for the surrender of eligible international emissions
units (to act as a floor);
(h) the extent to which units other than
carbon units should be able to be surrendered;
(i) the extent to which a liable
entity should be able to avoid liability for unit shortfall charge in relation
to an eligible financial year by surrendering a carbon unit with a vintage year
that is later than the eligible financial year;
(j) the arrangements for the
governance and administration of this Act and the associated provisions,
including:
(i) the functions and
powers of the Clean Energy Regulator; and
(ii) the Minister’s power
to give directions to the Clean Energy Regulator; and
(iii) the other powers of
the Minister;
(k) the relationship between:
(i) this Act and the
associated provisions; and
(ii) the Carbon Credits
(Carbon Farming Initiative) Act 2011;
(l) such other matters (if any) that:
(i) are specified in a
written instrument given by the Minister to the Chair of the Climate Change
Authority; and
(ii) relate to this Act and
the associated provisions.
Timing of reviews
(2) The first review must be completed before
the end of 31 December 2016.
(3) The second review must be completed
before the end of 31 December 2018.
(4) Each subsequent review must be completed
within 5 years after the deadline for completion of the previous review.
(5) For the purposes of subsections (2),
(3) and (4), a review is completed when the report of the review is given to
the Minister under section 292.
Consultation
(6) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must make provision for public consultation.
Instrument
(7) An instrument given under paragraph (1)(l)
is not a legislative instrument.
289
Periodic reviews of the level of carbon pollution caps etc.
(1) Reviews of the following matters are to
be conducted by the Climate Change Authority:
(a) the level of carbon pollution
caps;
(b) any indicative national emissions
trajectory and national carbon budget.
Relevant matters
(2) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must have regard to the following matters:
(a) Australia’s international
obligations under international climate change agreements;
(b) undertakings relating to the
reduction of greenhouse gas emissions that Australia has given under
international climate change agreements;
(c) Australia’s medium‑term and long‑term
targets for reducing net greenhouse gas emissions;
(d) progress towards the reduction of
greenhouse gas emissions;
(e) global action to reduce greenhouse
gas emissions;
(f) estimates of the global
greenhouse gas emissions budget;
(g) the economic and social
implications associated with various levels of carbon pollution caps;
(h) voluntary action to reduce
Australia’s greenhouse gas emissions;
(i) estimates of greenhouse gas
emissions that are not covered by this Act;
(j) estimates of the number of
Australian carbon credit units that are likely to be issued;
(k) the extent (if any) of non‑compliance
with this Act and the associated provisions;
(l) the extent (if any) to which
liable entities have failed to surrender sufficient units to avoid liability
for unit shortfall charge;
(m) any acquisitions, or proposed acquisitions,
by the Commonwealth of eligible international emissions units;
(n) such other matters (if any) as the
Climate Change Authority considers relevant.
Timing of reviews
(3) The first review must be completed before
the end of 28 February 2014.
(4) The second review must be completed
before the end of 28 February 2016.
(5) Each subsequent review must be completed
within 12 months after the deadline for completion of the previous review.
(6) For the purposes of subsections (3),
(4) and (5), a review is completed when the report of the review is given to
the Minister under section 292.
Consultation
(7) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must make provision for public consultation.
Report
(8) The report of the first review must set
out recommendations relating to the level of carbon pollution caps for each of
the first 5 flexible charge years.
(9) The report of a subsequent review must
set out a recommendation relating to the level of the carbon pollution cap for the
flexible charge year next following the last flexible charge year for which a corresponding
recommendation was made in the report of the previous review.
(10) A report of a review must set out
recommendations for an indicative national emissions trajectory and a national
carbon budget.
(11) A report of a review must deal with the
extent to which any indicative national emissions trajectory and national
carbon budget are expected to be met by:
(a) emissions that are reflected in the
provisional emissions numbers of liable entities; and
(b) emissions that:
(i) are attributable to
activities in the Australian economy; and
(ii) are not reflected in the
provisional emissions numbers of liable entities; and
(c) the purchase of eligible international
emission units (whether by the Commonwealth or other persons).
290 Updated
review of the level of the carbon pollution cap for 2020‑21
Scope
(1) This section applies if, as at 1 November
2014, there are no regulations in effect that declare the carbon pollution cap,
and the carbon pollution cap number, for the flexible charge year beginning on
1 July 2015.
(2) The Climate Change Authority must conduct
a review of the level of the carbon pollution cap for the flexible charge year
beginning on 1 July 2020.
Relevant matters
(3) In conducting the review, the Climate
Change Authority must have regard to the matters set out in subsection 289(2).
Timing of review
(4) The review must be completed before the
end of 28 February 2015.
(5) For the purposes of subsection (4),
a review is completed when the report of the review is given to the Minister
under section 292.
Consultation
(6) In conducting the review, the Climate
Change Authority must make provision for public consultation.
291
Periodic reviews of progress in achieving Australia’s emission reduction
targets and national carbon budget
(1) Reviews of the following matters are to
be conducted by the Climate Change Authority:
(a) progress in achieving Australia’s
medium‑term and long‑term targets for the reduction of net greenhouse gas
emissions;
(b) progress in achieving any national
carbon budget.
Relevant matters
(2) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must have regard to the following:
(a) the level of greenhouse gas
emissions in Australia;
(b) the level of purchases of eligible
international emissions units (whether by the Commonwealth or other persons);
(c) the level of greenhouse gas
emissions that:
(i) are attributable to
activities in the Australian economy; and
(ii) are not reflected in
the provisional emissions numbers of liable entities;
(d) voluntary action to reduce
greenhouse gas emissions;
(e) such other matters (if any) as the
Climate Change Authority considers relevant.
Timing of reviews etc.
(3) The first review must be completed before
the end of 28 February 2014.
(4) Each subsequent review must be completed
within 12 months after the deadline for completion of the previous review.
(5) For the purposes of subsections (3)
and (4), a review is completed when the report of the review is given to the
Minister under section 292.
Consultation
(6) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must make provision for public consultation.
292
Report of review
(1) The Climate Change Authority must:
(a) prepare a report of a review under
section 288, 289, 290 or 291; and
(b) give the report to the Minister;
and
(c) as soon as practicable after
giving the report to the Minister, publish the report on the Climate Change
Authority’s website.
(2) The Minister must cause copies of the
report to be tabled in each House of the Parliament within 15 sitting days of
that House after receiving the report.
Recommendations
(3) The report may set out recommendations to
the Commonwealth Government.
(4) In formulating a recommendation that the
Commonwealth Government should take particular action, the Climate Change
Authority must analyse the costs and benefits of that action.
(5) Subsection (4) does not prevent the Climate
Change Authority from taking other matters into account in formulating a
recommendation.
(6) If a report sets out one or more
recommendations to the Commonwealth Government, the report must set out the Climate
Change Authority’s reasons for those recommendations.
Government response to recommendations
(7) If a report sets out one or more
recommendations to the Commonwealth Government:
(a) as soon as practicable after
receiving the report, the Minister must cause to be prepared a statement
setting out the Commonwealth Government’s response to each of the
recommendations; and
(b) within 6 months after receiving
the report, the Minister must cause copies of the statement to be tabled in
each House of the Parliament.
(8) The Commonwealth Government’s response to
the recommendations may have regard to the views of the following:
(a) the Regulator;
(b) such other persons as the Minister
considers relevant.
Division 3—Other reviews
293
Reviews of this Act and the associated provisions to be conducted by the Climate
Change Authority at the request of the Minister or the Parliament
Scope
(1) This section applies if:
(a) either:
(i) the Minister, by
written instrument given to the Chair of the Climate Change Authority, requests
the Climate Change Authority to conduct a review under this section of such
matters as are specified in the instrument; or
(ii) both Houses of the
Parliament, by resolution, request the Climate Change Authority to conduct a
review under this section of such matters as are specified in the resolution;
and
(b) the matters specified in the
instrument or resolution, as the case may be, are covered by subsection (4).
Review
(2) The Climate Change Authority must conduct
a review of those matters.
Consultation
(3) In conducting a review, the Climate
Change Authority must make provision for public consultation.
Covered matters
(4) This subsection covers the following
matters:
(a) the effectiveness and efficiency
of this Act and the associated provisions, including:
(i) the effectiveness of
reporting requirements imposed on liable entities; and
(ii) the effectiveness of
the coverage of emissions, and potential emissions, of greenhouse gases; and
(iii) administrative costs
incurred by liable entities in complying with this Act and the associated
provisions;
(iv) administrative costs
incurred by liable entities in surrendering units to avoid being liable to pay
unit shortfall charge;
(b) whether there should be any
changes to Australia’s medium‑term and long‑term targets and carbon budget for
reducing net greenhouse gas emissions;
(c) the process that should apply to
the setting of carbon pollution caps;
(d) policies and procedures that
should apply to the auctioning of carbon units;
(e) the provisions that should apply
in relation to the issue of carbon units for a fixed charge (to act as a cap);
(f) the provisions that should apply
in relation to minimum reserve charges for the issue of carbon units as a
result of an auction (to act as a floor);
(g) the provisions that should apply
in relation to charges for the surrender of eligible international emissions
units (to act as a floor);
(h) the extent to which units other
than carbon units should be able to be surrendered;
(i) the extent to which a liable
entity should be able to avoid liability for unit shortfall charge in relation
to an eligible financial year by surrendering a carbon unit with a vintage year
that is later than the eligible financial year;
(j) the arrangements for the
governance and administration of this Act and the associated provisions,
including:
(i) the functions and
powers of the Clean Energy Regulator; and
(ii) the Minister’s power
to give directions to the Clean Energy Regulator; and
(iii) the other powers of
the Minister;
(k) the relationship between:
(i) this Act and the
associated provisions; and
(ii) the Carbon Credits
(Carbon Farming Initiative) Act 2011.
Instrument
(5) An instrument given under subparagraph (1)(a)(i)
is not a legislative instrument.
294
Report of review
(1) The Climate Change Authority must:
(a) prepare a report of a review under
section 293; and
(b) give the report to the Minister;
and
(c) as soon as practicable after
giving the report to the Minister, publish the report on the Climate Change
Authority’s website.
(2) The Minister must cause copies of the
report to be tabled in each House of the Parliament within 15 sitting days of
that House after receiving the report.
Recommendations
(3) The report may set out recommendations to
the Commonwealth Government.
(4) In formulating a recommendation that the
Commonwealth Government should take particular action, the Climate Change
Authority must analyse the costs and benefits of that action.
(5) Subsection (4) does not prevent the Climate
Change Authority from taking other matters into account in formulating a
recommendation.
(6) If a report sets out one or more
recommendations to the Commonwealth Government, the report must set out the Climate
Change Authority’s reasons for those recommendations.
Government response to recommendations
(7) If a report sets out one or more recommendations
to the Commonwealth Government:
(a) as soon as practicable after
receiving the report, the Minister must cause to be prepared a statement
setting out the Commonwealth Government’s response to each of the
recommendations; and
(b) within 6 months after receiving
the report, the Minister must cause copies of the statement to be tabled in
each House of the Parliament.
(8) The Commonwealth Government’s response to
the recommendations may have regard to the views of the following:
(a) the Regulator;
(b) such other persons as the Minister
considers relevant.
Part 23—Miscellaneous
295
Miscellaneous functions of the Regulator
The Regulator has the following
functions:
(a) to monitor compliance with this
Act and the associated provisions;
(b) to monitor the extent to which
persons have taken steps, by way of the surrender of carbon units, to avoid
being liable to pay unit shortfall charge;
(c) to promote compliance with:
(i) this Act; and
(ii) the associated
provisions;
(d) to conduct and/or co‑ordinate
education programs about:
(i) this Act; and
(ii) the associated
provisions; and
(iii) emissions trading
schemes;
(e) to advise the Minister on matters
relating to:
(i) this Act and the
associated provisions; and
(ii) emissions trading
schemes;
(f) to advise and assist persons in
relation to their obligations under this Act and the associated provisions;
(g) to advise and assist persons in
relation to the steps that can be taken, by way of the surrender of eligible
emissions units, to avoid being liable to pay unit shortfall charge;
(h) to advise and assist the
representatives of persons in relation to compliance by persons with:
(i) this Act; and
(ii) the associated
provisions;
(i) to liaise with regulatory and
other relevant bodies, whether in Australia or elsewhere, about co‑operative
arrangements for matters relating to:
(i) this Act; and
(ii) the associated
provisions; and
(iii) emissions trading
schemes;
(j) to collect, analyse, interpret
and disseminate statistical information relating to the operation of this Act
and the associated provisions.
296
Computerised decision‑making
(1) The Regulator may, by instrument in
writing, arrange for the use, under the Regulator’s control, of computer
programs for any purposes for which the Regulator may, or must, under this Act
or the regulations:
(a) make a decision; or
(b) exercise any power or comply with
any obligation; or
(c) do anything else related to making
a decision or exercising a power or complying with an obligation.
(2) For the purposes of this Act and the
regulations, the Regulator is taken to have:
(a) made a decision; or
(b) exercised a power or complied with
an obligation; or
(c) done something else related to the
making of a decision or the exercise of a power or the compliance with an
obligation;
that was made, exercised, complied with or done by the
operation of a computer program under such an arrangement.
(3) An instrument made under subsection (1)
is not a legislative instrument.
297 Regulator’s
power to require further information
Applications
(1) If:
(a) a person makes an application to
the Regulator under this Act; and
(b) the Regulator exercises a power,
under another provision of this Act, to require the applicant to give the Regulator
further information in connection with the application;
the Regulator:
(c) must ensure that the further
information is relevant to the matter to which the application relates; and
(d) must ensure that the power is
exercised in a reasonable way.
Requests
(2) If:
(a) a person makes a request to the Regulator
under this Act; and
(b) the Regulator exercises a power,
under another provision of this Act, to require the person to give the Regulator
further information in connection with the request;
the Regulator:
(c) must ensure that the further
information is relevant to the matter to which the request relates; and
(d) must ensure that the power is
exercised in a reasonable way.
297A
Actions may be taken by an agent of a person
(1) The principles of agency apply in
relation to the taking, by a person, of any of the following actions under this
Act or the associated provisions:
(a) making an application;
(b) withdrawing an application;
(c) making a request;
(d) giving a notice (including an
electronic notice);
(e) giving an instruction;
(f) giving information;
(g) giving a report;
(h) giving a plan;
(i) making a payment.
(2) For example, the person may authorise
another person to be the person’s agent for the purposes of making an
application under this Act or the associated provisions on the person’s behalf.
(3) To avoid doubt, this section does not, by
implication, limit the application of the principles of agency to other matters
arising under this Act or the associated provisions.
298
Delegation by the Minister
(1) The Minister may, by writing, delegate
any or all of his or her functions or powers under this Act or the regulations
to:
(a) the Secretary; or
(b) an SES employee, or acting SES
employee, in the Department.
Note: The expressions SES employee and
acting SES employee are defined in the Acts Interpretation Act
1901.
(2) In exercising powers under a delegation,
the delegate must comply with any directions of the Minister.
(3) Subsection (1) does not apply to a
power to make, vary or revoke a legislative instrument.
299
Delegation by a State Minister or a Territory Minister
(1) A Minister of a State or Territory may,
by writing, delegate any or all of his or her functions or powers under this
Act to a person who:
(a) is an officer or employee of the
State or Territory, as the case may be; and
(b) holds or performs the duties of an
office or position that is equivalent to a position occupied by an SES employee
in the Australian Public Service.
(2) In exercising powers under a delegation,
the delegate must comply with any directions of the Minister of the State or
the Minister of the Territory, as the case may be.
300
Delegation by the Secretary
(1) The Secretary may, by writing, delegate
any or all of his or her functions or powers under this Act or the regulations
to an SES employee, or acting SES employee, in the Department.
Note: The expressions SES employee and
acting SES employee are defined in the Acts Interpretation Act
1901.
(2) In exercising powers under a delegation,
the delegate must comply with any directions of the Secretary.
301
Concurrent operation of State and Territory laws
This Act is not intended to exclude or
limit the operation of a law of a State or Territory that is capable of
operating concurrently with this Act.
302
Law relating to legal professional privilege not affected
The Act does not affect the law relating
to legal professional privilege.
303
Arrangements with States and Territories
States
(1) The Minister may make arrangements with a
Minister of a State with respect to the administration of this Act, including arrangements
for the performance of the functions of a magistrate under this Act by a
magistrate of that State.
(2) The Minister may arrange with a Minister
of a State with whom an arrangement is in force under subsection (1) for
the variation or revocation of the arrangement.
Australian Capital Territory
(3) The Minister may make arrangements with a
Minister of the Australian Capital Territory with respect to the administration
of this Act, including arrangements for the performance of the functions of a
magistrate under this Act by a magistrate of the Australian Capital Territory.
(4) The Minister may arrange with a Minister
of the Australian Capital Territory with whom an arrangement is in force under subsection (3)
for the variation or revocation of the arrangement.
Northern Territory
(5) The Minister may make arrangements with a
Minister of the Northern Territory with respect to the administration of this
Act, including arrangements for the performance of the functions of a
magistrate under this Act by a magistrate of the Northern Territory.
(6) The Minister may arrange with a Minister
of the Northern Territory with whom an arrangement is in force under subsection (5)
for the variation or revocation of the arrangement.
Norfolk Island
(7) The Minister may make arrangements with a
Minister of Norfolk Island with respect to the administration of this Act,
including arrangements for the performance of the functions of a magistrate
under this Act by a magistrate of Norfolk Island.
(8) The Minister may arrange with a Minister
of Norfolk Island with whom an arrangement is in force under subsection (7)
for the variation or revocation of the arrangement.
Gazettal
(9) A copy of each instrument by which an
arrangement under this section is made, varied or revoked is to be published in
the Gazette.
Legislative Instruments Act
(10) An instrument by which an arrangement
under this section is made, varied or revoked is not a legislative instrument.
303A
Contracts and arrangements to protect energy security
(1) The Treasurer may authorise the making of
contracts and arrangements by the Commonwealth, where each contract or
arrangement is made:
(a) for the purpose of protecting
energy security in Australia; and
(b) with a constitutional corporation.
(2) The Consolidated Revenue Fund is
appropriated for the purposes of paying amounts payable by the Commonwealth
under a contract or arrangement authorised under subsection (1).
(3) Section 307 does not apply to this
section.
303B
Loans to owners etc. of emissions‑intensive coal‑fired generation complexes
Loans to purchase future carbon units
(1) The Treasurer may authorise loans of
money (whether secured or unsecured) by the Commonwealth, where each loan is
made:
(a) for the purpose of purchasing
future carbon units at an auction conducted by the Regulator during:
(i) the first financial
year during which future carbon units are issued; or
(ii) either of the next 2
financial years; and
(b) to a person who:
(i) owns, controls or
operates an emissions‑intensive coal‑fired generation complex; and
(ii) is a constitutional
corporation.
Loans to refinance existing loans
(2) The Treasurer may authorise loans of
money (whether secured or unsecured) by the Commonwealth, where each loan is
made:
(a) for the purpose of refinancing
another loan that relates (in whole or in part) to an emissions‑intensive coal‑fired
generation complex; and
(b) to a person who:
(i) owns, controls or
operates the generation complex; and
(ii) is a constitutional
corporation; and
(c) during the period of 3 years
beginning at the commencement of this section.
Appropriation
(3) The Consolidated Revenue Fund is
appropriated for the purposes of making a loan authorised under subsection (1)
or (2).
Emissions‑intensive coal‑fired generation complex
(4) For the purposes of this section, an emissions‑intensive
coal‑fired generation complex is a generation complex, where:
(a) at least 95% of the electricity
generated by the generation complex during the period:
(i) beginning on 1 July
2008; and
(ii) ending on 30 June
2010;
was attributable to the
combustion of coal; and
(b) the emissions intensity of the
generation complex is greater than 0.80.
Note: For emissions intensity, see section 168.
(5) For the purposes of subsection (4),
disregard subsection 168(2) in working out the emissions intensity of a
generation complex.
Future carbon unit
(6) For the purposes of this section, a future
carbon unit is a carbon unit:
(a) with a particular vintage year;
and
(b) that is issued as a result of an
auction conducted by the Regulator before the start of the vintage year.
Transitional—definitions
(7) For the purposes of this section, if a
term used in this section is defined in section 5 or 168, the definition
has effect, during the period:
(a) beginning at the commencement of
this section; and
(b) ending at the commencement of sections 5
and 168;
as if sections 5 and 168 had commenced at the same
time as this section.
Constitutional basis
(8) Section 307 does not apply to this
section.
304
Liability for damages
None of the following:
(a) the Minister;
(b) a delegate of the Minister;
(c) the Regulator;
(d) an official of the Regulator;
(e) a delegate of the Regulator;
(f) the appropriate energy market
operator in relation to a generation complex;
is liable to an action or other proceeding for damages
for, or in relation to, an act or matter in good faith done or omitted to be
done:
(g) in the performance or purported
performance of any function; or
(h) in the exercise or purported
exercise of any power;
conferred by this Act or the associated provisions.
305
Executive power of the Commonwealth
This Act does not, by implication, limit
the executive power of the Commonwealth.
306
Notional payments by the Commonwealth
(1) The purpose of this section is to ensure
that amounts payable under this Act are notionally payable by the Commonwealth
(or parts of the Commonwealth).
(2) The Minister responsible for
administering the Financial Management and Accountability Act 1997 may
give written directions for the purposes of this section, including directions
relating to the transfer of amounts within, or between, accounts operated by
the Commonwealth.
307
Alternative constitutional basis
(1) Without limiting its effect apart from
this section, this Act and the associated provisions also have effect as
provided by this section.
External affairs
(2) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if:
(a) subsections (3) to (8) had
not been enacted; and
(b) this Act and the associated
provisions did not apply except to the extent to which they relate to:
(i) matters of
international concern; or
(ii) matters external to
Australia.
Taxation
(3) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if:
(a) subsections (2), (4), (5),
(6), (7) and (8) had not been enacted; and
(b) this Act and the associated
provisions did not apply except to the extent to which they relate to taxation.
Limited types of liable entities
(4) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if:
(a) subsections (2), (3), (5) and
(6) had not been enacted; and
(b) each reference in this Act and the
associated provisions to a liable entity were, by express provision, confined
to a liable entity who is:
(i) a constitutional
corporation; or
(ii) the Commonwealth; or
(iii) an authority of the
Commonwealth.
Limited types of facilities
(5) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if subsections (2), (3), (4) and (6) had
not been enacted and each reference in this Act and the associated provisions
to a facility were, by express provision, confined to a facility:
(a) in a Territory; or
(b) outside Australia; or
(c) in a Commonwealth place; or
(d) over which the Commonwealth, or an
authority of the Commonwealth, has operational control; or
(e) operated in the course of, or in
relation to, any of the following:
(i) trade or commerce
between Australia and places outside Australia;
(ii) trade or commerce
among the States;
(iii) trade or commerce
within a Territory, between a State or Territory or between 2 Territories.
Limited types of supply or re‑supply
(6) This Act and the associated provisions also
have the effect they would have if subsections (2), (3), (4) and (5) had
not been enacted and each reference in this Act and the associated provisions
to supply or re‑supply were, by express provision, confined to supply or re‑supply:
(a) in a Territory; or
(b) outside Australia; or
(c) in a Commonwealth place; or
(d) by the Commonwealth or an
authority of the Commonwealth; or
(e) in the course of, or in relation
to, any of the following:
(i) trade or commerce
between Australia and places outside Australia;
(ii) trade or commerce
among the States;
(iii) trade or commerce
within a Territory, between a State or Territory or between 2 Territories.
Jobs and Competitiveness Program
(7) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if the reference in subsection 145(1) to
the issue of free carbon units were, by express provision, confined to the
issue of free carbon units to a person who is:
(a) a constitutional corporation; or
(b) the Commonwealth; or
(c) an authority of the Commonwealth.
Coal‑fired electricity generation
(8) This Act and the associated provisions
also have the effect they would have if this Act provided that a person is not
entitled to make an application under section 162 for a certificate of
eligibility for coal‑fired generation assistance unless the person is:
(a) a constitutional corporation; or
(b) the Commonwealth; or
(c) an authority of the Commonwealth.
Associated provisions
(9) For the purposes of this section, associated
provisions does not include the following provisions:
(a) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Excise) Act 2011;
(b) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Charges—Customs) Act 2011;
(c) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Auctions) Act 2011;
(d) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Issue Charge—Fixed Charge) Act 2011;
(e) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (Unit Shortfall Charge—General) Act 2011;
(f) the provisions of the Clean
Energy (International Unit Surrender Charge) Act 2011.
308
Compensation for acquisition of property
(1) If the operation of this Act or the
regulations would result in an acquisition of property from a person otherwise
than on just terms, the Commonwealth is liable to pay a reasonable amount of
compensation to the person.
(2) If the Commonwealth and the person do not
agree on the amount of the compensation, the person may institute proceedings
in a court of competent jurisdiction for the recovery from the Commonwealth of
such reasonable amount of compensation as the court determines.
(3) In this section:
acquisition of property has the same meaning
as in paragraph 51(xxxi) of the Constitution.
just terms has the same meaning as in
paragraph 51(xxxi) of the Constitution.
309
Prescribing matters by reference to other instruments
(1) The regulations may make provision in
relation to a matter by applying, adopting or incorporating, with or without
modification, a matter contained in an instrument or writing:
(a) as in force or existing at a
particular time; or
(b) as in force or existing from time
to time.
(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite
anything in subsection 14(2) of the Legislative Instruments Act 2003.
(3) If the regulations make provision in
relation to a matter by applying, adopting or incorporating, with or without
modification, a matter contained in an instrument or writing, the Regulator
must ensure that the text of the matter applied, adopted or incorporated is
published on its website.
(4) Subsection (3) does not apply if the
publication would infringe copyright.
310
Administrative decisions under the regulations
The regulations may make provision in
relation to a matter by conferring a power to make a decision of an
administrative character on the Regulator.
311
Transitional—definitions
Scope
(1) This section applies to a definition in
section 5 if that definition defines an expression to have the same
meaning as in the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007.
Transitional
(2) The definition has effect as if the
amendments of the National Greenhouse and Energy Reporting Act 2007 made
by Part 2 of Schedule 1 to the Clean Energy (Consequential
Amendments) Act 2011 had commenced at the same time as section 3 of
this Act.
312
Regulations
The Governor‑General may make
regulations prescribing matters:
(a) required or permitted by this Act
to be prescribed; or
(b) necessary or convenient to be
prescribed for carrying out or giving effect to this Act.